Pursuing Her Dream - Tab`s Book Corner
Transcription
Pursuing Her Dream - Tab`s Book Corner
1 PURSUING HER DREAM Edward (Tab) Tablak 2 Pursuing Her Dream Preface. This is the story of a young woman’s dream to make her contribution to the world as a first class journalist. Her journey as a pace setter, takes us through the turbulent years of anti war demonstrations, wartime action in various parts of the world and struggles against tyranny that takes place in all the days of our lives. Prologue November 30, 2000. From a deep sleep on the sofa I sat up in a cold sweat. I had been struggling against my captors, trying to bite the muscular arm of the one who was wrestling me to the ground. The Viet Cong had overtaken our camp at night and had captured me. Fighting like a tiger did me no good as I fought against the grip of my captor. I began cursing, words flowing out my mouth that I did not know were part of my vocabulary. He easily evaded my flailing legs. The grin on his face was predicting his pleasure once I was under control. I came fully awake, trying to come to grips with the idea that it was a nightmare, let out a long sigh of relief .My head and face were drenched in sweat. My pillow was damp as was the hair on my head and my forehead. I attempted to get the images out of my mind. 3 I had not had such a dream since the days following my departure from Vietnam in May of 1967 I rose from the sofa, walked to the lavatory in order to wipe away the moisture. Feeling refreshed and dealing with the reality of the moment, I turned to work at my computer. An hour later I turned from my computer keyboard to take a another look at the sun setting to the west, southwest The low cloud bank was a combination of deep black and. the fiery red that makes me think of my childhood idea of hell. The scene was breath taking, keeping me in rapture until the last glimmer of red was gone. Below me, the darkening Hudson River held a flicker of lights from the New Jersey communities to the west side. I suddenly had an eerie feeling that I was overlooking the Mekong River after sunset where there were no flickering lights even though hundreds of the Viet Cong surely looked back toward Mickey and me. I shivered. My mind was suddenly backed to a scene on the Mekong River where I spent my first night in a Vietnam War zone. I remembered wondering how many enemy eyes might have been watching me walk to the latrine after dusk, just before hitting the sack for the night. My new military friends kept telling me it was safe in camp, but I wasn’t ready to take their word for it. My mind flipped back to the present. If my guess was right, Coalton Borough in southwestern Pennsylvania, the home of my childhood and youth, was on a direct line between the setting sun and my apartment-office on Riverside Drive in the Big Apple. 4 Coalton is where the dream took shape. It was during my senior year while I had been the editor of the high school weekly. I knew that I wanted to be journalist, a reporter for a major newspaper, covering the important events of my lifetime. A tinkling from the kitchen, where Jack, my husband, was puttering, probably setting out snacks to go with our evening drinks, interrupted the silence and awe of the moment. I was just putting the finishing touches on an article for Vanity Fair. The editor had requested a piece, about our impressions of Vietnam, twenty some years after the end of conflict. My Brother Mickey’s photos would occupy as much space as my prose. With no forewarning, cool lips were softly Whispering sweet words of love, while hands were removing mine from the keyboard. “Time for a break before company arrives. Besides you’re at your best after midnight when it comes to the wrapping up of your stories.” “Thank you, dear. I am so near the end but I’ll stop. How about a nice loving hug and smooches before I run off to freshen up?” Jack was very accommodating My little brother, Mickey, six inches taller and seventy pounds heavier than me, who is my confidant, partner and fellow adventurer, was bringing his Julie for drinks and dinner, due in about ten minutes. He and I had been inseparable since his sophomore year in high school when we pledged to our loving mama to work together instead of competing for our places in the family and the community. 5 It was his passion for photography that inspired the idea of a partnership as journalist and photojournalist, a career that joined us at the hip, so to speak, for more than thirty years. Just recently Mickey and I had been awarded the Presidential Medal of Freedom for meritorious service to the nation. That was followed by an invitation to accompany President Clinton on a visit, the first ever, by a president, to Vietnam. This evening Mickey would help me select for the article some of the dozens of photos he took during our visit. This was our first get together since our return last week. He was the lovable big honey bear who was there by my side in Vietnam and during the six day war in Israel. He protected my back during the rough stretches in Greece when the Colonels ran roughshod over dissidents and in the Philippines when Marcos was fighting to stay in power. After hugs and kisses when the twosome arrived, Mickey apologized “Sorry to be late but the sitter for our granddaughter was late. We have young Juliet for a few days while the kids are off for a long weekend.” Julie, in an excite voice, asked “Did you know that the famous Cheka journalists were featured on the television news this evening?” I replied “No idea. What was the occasion?” “Using some file footage, the news was announcing your upcoming publication of Impressions of Vietnam, (Twenty Years Later)” and your appearance at Barnes and Noble for the opening sales day of Mickey’s latest photo book.” Jack interjected “Julie, how does it feel to be married to a world famous photographer?” 6 “I’d guess that it’s the same as being married to a world famous journalist.” We all burst out laughing and went to the drinks trolley. The next few hours were filled with stimulating conversation about their visit and Mickey’s depictions of the colors in Vermont and New Hampshire through his striking photos. When we exhausted that subject I had to tell some tales of my visits to the Vanity Fair offices where the editor and I struggled over which materials were to be used in the article. After dinner, Julie and Jack cleaned up while Mickey and I made our photo choices. Back in the living room, Julie, taking one look at us asked “Hey, you two, you look so glum. What ‘s going on?” It took me a few seconds before I answered. “Mickey just read a part of the notes from an interview that I had not shared with him. We just realized the danger I was in, unknown to me at the time, but something I discovered during my conversation with a woman during this second trip.” Julie asked “Can you talk about it?” Mickey jumped in. "Marie Nguyen was a Vietnamese woman that Cathy interviewed along with her sister in a small village shortly after our arrival. Her sister was a strong believer in the rightness of the South Vietnamese cause and our participation in the war. Marie was an ardent supporter of independence for the south and thus a believer in the Viet Cong position.” I started to intervene but Mickey brushed me off and picked up the manuscript. She is quoting her interview with Marie while we were there on our last visit. “I could not tell you then that I was an intelligence agent for the Vietcong during that first visit. Neither my sister nor you were aware that you were completely 7 surrounded by soldiers, dressed as civilians and hidden from your view.” “I was the head of intelligence for the entire district and could summon military force I needed to accomplish my mission. I had recruited one or more villagers in every village within my district. Every move by your military was known to me within hours and relayed that evening to our military headquarters.” “I spread lies to the villages through the stories I told my recruits. I had a cadre of beautiful young women who helped to recruit young men to enlist with the Viet Cong.” “My sister, Helen, had no knowledge of this although she knew I was deeply sympathetic with the V.C. cause. If she had ever found out my associates would have immediately created an incident that would have placed her in a V.C. prison to keep her silent.” Mickey stopped reading. “I shudder to think that one slip by Cathy could have meant the end of her short lived career as a correspondent I know its history but it still scares the hell out of me.” Jack, in order to switch the focus, poured more coffee before taking his seat. Julie picked up on that clue and asked, “Cathy, what was your general impression of the changes you saw.” I responded. “We were delightfully surprised during our bus trips to the former killing fields to see crop farms and orchards replacing those fields that had been pockmarked from exploding bombs and artillery shells.” Mickey cut in. and said with a snap “Let’s put that off for now. My eyes are burning and sleep beckons. We’re having lunch together the day after next. What say?” 8 Ten minutes later Jack’s arms and hands were offering me comfort and turning my mind away from Vietnam. Part 1. Chapter 1. Coalton, Pa. 1950’s Dinah White, my newest friend, and I sauntered slowly from school chatting about her new boyfriend, the only colored boy in our class. Di was one of three colored girls in the class. We in Coalton had not arrived at the politically correct way of things in those early days. Di said “I have this feeling that he wants to kiss me but I’m afraid. Do you think it’s too soon to let him kiss me, Cathy?” “I don’t know, Di. I’ve never been kissed. . I figured I have lots of time. Are you coming to the to the freshman dance Friday?” “I don’t think so. I could be the only colored girl there and if Jimmy doesn’t come, I won’t have any one to dance with.” “I guess you’re right. My brother, Mickey, probably would, but the prejudice would keep all the other boys away. You and I could do a couple of dances. . Other girls do that because many of the boys are afraid of being rejected so they don’t get around to asking.” .”Cathy, have you met Jimmy?” “No, I haven’t.” “I could introduce you tomorrow at lunch time. Maybe you could ask him to attend the dance.” 9 “Sure. Let’s give it a try.” We arrived at our fence gate. Di still had three blocks to walk to the company housing where some poorer families and the five Negro families lived. There was a definite dividing line in this small coal mining community. I walked into the kitchen, dropped my schoolbooks onto the floor and opened the icebox. “Mama, would you like to join me in a glass of lemonade?” No answer. I looked in the dining room and living room but she wasn’t there. Moving to the bottom of the stairs I called up “Mama. Are you there? No answer. “She must be next door visiting with Aunt Kate.” As I turned toward the kitchen I heard the screen door close and mama calling “Cathy, are you home?” “I’m here, looking for you.” Mama’s answer was interrupted by the shrill sound of the siren, the sound rising and falling, rising and falling, rising and falling and suddenly ceased. I felt the pit of stomach dropping and saw mama’s face turning ashen. I ran to her open arms waiting to envelope me, both our minds dealing with the meaning of that siren. If it wasn’t noon or six o’clock, the siren should be silent. This was the middle of the afternoon my mind was saying disaster and the image I was envisioning was cave in and daddy deep in the mine pit, covered and gasping for air. ‘Hush, baby. It isn’t a cave in. During a major disaster, the siren would have been a continuous shriek not rising and falling.” At firs her words did not reach my conscious mind. The tears were gushing and my sobs must have been loud. Mama continued to hold me tight and repeated her words until she felt my responding to her message. I pulled my head 10 away from her breast “but the siren means a major accident. People could be dead. Daddy could be hurt or dead” .“ Hush, dear. Come; walk with me to Aunt Kate’s, next door. She has a phone and has probably talked to someone who knows why the siren sounded.” As we stepped outside, two other neighbors shouted to mama. “Is it a cave in?” I could hear the sound of doors slamming shut as other women neighbors were emerging, seeking answers to that same question. “Sorry Suzie, I have no idea. I am going to see if Kate has heard anything.” As we turned away from the neighbor, I could feel the tears continuing to sting my eyes. Words began tumbling from my lips. “Is daddy down below? Has anyone been killed? Is daddy okay? By the time we arrived at her door the tears were streaming down my cheeks. My silent cry was suddenly a loud sob. Mama put her arm around me and hugged me to her breast. “Hold your tears, dear. Your daddy will be fine.” We walked in the kitchen door. Kate enfolded both of us in her arms. She whispered. “It was not a cave-in but as you know the siren is automatically sounded if there is any accident. The main hoist jerked to a stop part way down with three men aboard and it will take some time to manually retrieve the hoist, unload the men and start the repairs.” That didn’t satisfy me. “Is daddy okay?” “Of course. He’s still at work and will be working overtime since he hoist will not be repaired by four o’clock, the usual quitting time for his shift.” “When will we know about the hoist?” 11 “Don’t worry, sweetie. You daddy will be fine. I will walk over with the news as soon as I have a return phone call from my friend, Mary, who runs the store across the street from the mine entrance and office.” Mama seemed to relax but I wasn’t fooled by their outward calm, having been able to read my mom’s emotions since I had my twelfth birthday, two years ago. If I was worried about my dad, you could bet your boots that mama was. The air was blue with tension that travelled from mama right down to my guts. We thanked Aunt Kate and walked back to our house while Kate talked with the neighbors who had remained huddled on the street in front of Kate’s house. I heard their raised voices as mama and walked away. Mama’s actions were jerky and her words were clipped, signals to me of her deep concern. Most of the time, we who lived in mining communities, buried our anxiousness down deep. While this mine had an excellent safety record, all miner families, in the region, and probably world wide, had embedded in their minds the many tragedies of mine cave-ins. Keeping those worries down deep was the only way we lived out our lives, but even the slightest incident brought our anxiety to the surface. The fear of death from cave-ins must be near the top of mama’s mind. She had lost two uncles, during a major accident in a West Virginia mine some years ago. They were brothers of her mother, who was already a coal miner’s widow by then. The years that followed were difficult for mama, especially when Aunt Kate, her only sister, left town for a while, leaving a scar on mama’s essence. 12 I poured the drinks and we had some woman-to-woman talk along with our lemonade, after which I picked up my books and headed for my bedroom and to do my homework. When I finished I moved to my Thursday chore list. Forty minutes later I called out “Mama. I finished dusting the furniture and cleaned up my room. May I go to see Jenny for an hour?” “No, I need you to set the table for dinner.” “Why can’t Mickey do that?” “This is a girl’s job. Mickey should work with his father in the garden” “But he isn’t doing that now. He’s playing with his basketball in the driveway.” “No matter. I want you to sweep the floor and set the table.” The sharp tone was another signal of the depth of her concern but I persisted. I started taking down the plates, muttering to myself. “This isn’t fair.” “How many times do I have to tell you?” “I know. Life isn’t fair but you could make it fairer by getting Mickey to pitch in. How about I ask him to help?” Her voice an octave higher than usual finally got through to me. “That’s enough. Just get on with your chores and quit arguing.” I was a bright child and, as my mother would say, fourteen going on thirty but not always wise. I must have loved to argue with my mama because I spent a lot of time either arguing or trying to bargain with her. There were times I drove her to exasperation with my arguments, especially when I believed she wasn’t being fair 13 She did try to teach me early enough that life was not about being fair. She also taught me how to keep up a struggle against long odds, her very life a living parable of that struggle. Raising a family on a miner’s wages was a challenge, to say the least. Daddy’s earnings were a bit better than many of our neighbors since he was a shift gang boss. While the odds were against mama, she was determined to accomplish her goals. First, no matter that for generation’s sons had followed their fathers into the mines, her Mickey was never to work in a mine. Second, her daughter, Cathy, like her brother Mickey, had to find a way to get a college education and escape this pit, a mining town called Coalton, on the West Virginia border. Being a daughter as well as a part-time confidant, I knew of her struggles, and shared some experiences, which influenced me strongly. One of her strategies was never to get into debt to the company store. In the past when Aunt Kate was coming home from Pittsburgh for a visit, she would bring food and supplies as a gift and then take mama shopping in Wheeling, spending less money than she would at the company store, thus helping to create some additional savings. Mama learned to sew, to be an excellent seamstress, working with her sister Kate to design clothes and expertly use the sewing machine that she and Kate owned in partnership. In addition to saving money on our clothes, she was hired by some of the executive’s wives to create and do tailor work for them. She taught Mickey and me to darn our socks neatly so that the repairs were not noticeable. We both learned to sew on our missing buttons on shirts and blouses. 14 There was practically no sleep for me that night. I almost fell asleep in the school library during the study hour the next day and could not wait to get home. When I arrived home that afternoon, papa met me at the door and wrapped in a huge bear hug. Speaking me in Slovak as was his habit with me, he said “Welcome sweetheart you can see that God has favored us again.” I buried my face into his chest and let the tears of joy roll. God had indeed returned our father to his loved ones. I finally pulled myself free and told him to sit while I poured him some coffee and waited for him to give me all the details. He did so in Slovak. Papa really spoke English well but we had an agreement to converse in Slovak. He wanted to be sure that Mickey and I were, at least, bilingual. The evening meal was a celebration with Kate providing a special rare rib roast, mashed potatoes and wilted lettuce salad with bacon bits. Mama and her sister Kate were close, the only surviving children from their family. Almost twenty years go Aunt Kate left Coalton to work in Pittsburgh, where she met and married a rather successful jewelry storeowner. As it happened they were unable to have children. They chose to travel extensively once Uncle Harry took in a partner. Four years ago Uncle Harry suffered a stroke and died in Kate’s arms. Knowing nothing about the jewelry business she sold out her interest and moved back to Coalton to be with her sister, Marie, my mama. Having no child of her own, she practically adopted Mickey and me. While mama usually talked with me generally about boy-girl things, Aunt Kate became my personal tutor during 15 my pubescence. In many ways, the hours I spent with her gave me tangible insights to the role of women in a man’s world. Later, when Mickey and I had become close friends, he shared with me some of the help that Aunt Kate had given him about girl behavior. I had watched my mom face some very difficult problems when she handled the family finances and helped keep up daddy’s spirits during those tough years. I loved my sweet loving daddy who was also a loving husband, but I learned fairly early that mom was the rock and foundation of our family. Although, like most teenagers. I rebelled against some of her notions. I thought they were so old fashioned. She insisted that my hems had to be below the knees and that my shirtwaist be buttoned completely to the top, not that I always followed her commands. I only forgot to button up once before I returned home .I had always opened the top button three minutes after leaving the house because I had to be like all the other girls sometimes I got daring and undid the second button. . I really did not fool my mom even at that. It took me a while but after a bit, I found out my mother’s secret. Her commands were mostly strong suggestions, teaching me what she believed was right, while she gave me room to rebel and learn for myself. Even as late as my junior year in high school, I had a curfew of ten o’clock. That was not a suggestion. She gave me leeway about finding my own boy friends, but I had to introduce each and every boy that walked me home from school or school dances. In a borough of less than seven thousand, I swear my mother knew the history of all the families. She engaged me in a 16 discussion about each of those boys and the reputation of the families, surprising me on occasion with knowledge of the boy’s reputation. It was her way of vetting them in order to protect her rebellious but precious daughter. Despite my insubordinate behavior, she never let me forget that she loved me and in some way did not want me to quit rebelling. I didn’t know that at the time, but she admitted later in our lives that were her way of teaching me, that testing the limits was one way to maturity. While we had those differences, I must admit that she had a lovingly sneaky way of moving in on my soft side. She initiated conversations about girls’ fashions while I learned to sew my dresses, slyly talking about boy, girl relations. In some subtle way she led me to understand that women had to be strong in order to overcome the prevailing notion of women being the weaker sex. After the table was set, mama had me walk over to Aunt Kate’s house to see if there was any news. Kate said she had talked to Mary twice, who had been informed that they were having trouble fixing the hoist. In the middle of our conversation the phone rang. “Hi Mary. What was that? Did you say they have to send to Pittsburgh or Wheeling to get the replacement part?” After a long pause she said. “I’ll let the families on our block know the latest,” “Cathy. That was not very good news. The parts supplier in Pittsburgh hasn’t the part. But will have it by ten tomorrow morning.” I could feel the sudden wrench in my gut. “That means daddy is stuck in the mine until tomorrow afternoon, He will be down there for at least thirty six hours without enough food or water.” I was suddenly nauseous and must have turned pale. My 17 hands were clammy as my imagination dealt with the idea of being underground for more than twenty-four hours, headlights extinguished to save power, men sitting around, too tired to work or even to chat. I felt gruesome. Kate took me into her arms to help me stay strong. “Honey, the company will send food and drinking water and maybe coffee down on a rope. That shaft is wide enough along side of the hoist car. They have plenty of air. Come, I need to notify some others. We can start with the news for your mother.” I cold see that mama was white as a sheet and tears were beginning to escape when she saw Aunt Kate accompanying me. It only took a minute for her to grasp the relatively good news instead of her first guess. Looking back I believe I matured into young womanhood just witnessing that minute, experiencing the rapid change in mama’s emotions. There was no time for a mask and a strong front. Flitting across her face I saw fear, love, relief and pure joy in less than thirty seconds. When Aunt Kate left to complete her errands, mama asked me to get Mickey, who was now in his room. She put on the teakettle signaling me to get the tea box and lemon. It was family conference time. First, she asked us to bow our heads while she said a payer of thanks for saving all the miners including daddy. She told Mickey of the events and why his daddy would not be home until the next day “Mickey, do you understand?” “Yes, mama, something worse could have happened, like an explosion or a cave in.” She quickly changed the subject. “Good. Now tell me. Were you studying or reading a comic book when Cathy called you?” 18 Abashedly with a flush on his cheeks he admitted. “Comics.” “And why would I be questioning you at this moment?” “Like you told me a couple of times. Studying is my ticket out of this black hole.” “Well?” “I promise, mama. In fact, I think my report card will look better this month.” “Will it be good enough? All A’s?” “No, but no C’s.” “Mickey, are you buying into my dream for your finding your life’s work outside the mines?” “Yes, mama.” “Okay. Since you started the first grade I have tried to help you to develop the skills that would get you a good education and prepare you for life. I am trying to give you the freedom to make good choices now so that you will be ready for total freedom.” “I’m sorry, mama. I just keep trying to keep up with the other kids and have fun.” “I want you to have fun, too, but I hope you want to be a leader not a follower. That takes knowledge.” “Okay.” Her voice softened as she said “I didn’t mean to get in a lecture mode, but today’s mine incident made me think about the shaky future .of life in Coalton. It is possible that this mine may not be operating ten years from now.” “I get it and promise more discipline.” “That’s good. How about asking me or Cathy to help you or, at least, check your homework? I am sure Cathy would be a big help.” 19 Mickey looked at me. I smiled “Happy to do it, little brother.” “Okay. It’s a deal, oh brainy one.” “All right, you two. If you mean it, then Mickey, hit the books and homework that Cathy can check later. You, sweetie, can spend an hour with Jenny and then come home to dinner. I think you ought to do some additional reading for your history and current events classes. . There is more to getting educated than getting good grades. Collateral reading is important.” I rapped on Mickey’s door about nine that evening. “How’re you doing, sport?” “Fine. I’ve been reading U.S. history in the twentieth century, some of it about the United Mine Workers during World War Two. Do you know much about that?” “No more than you, probably less.” Cathy, I have a paper due in two weeks. How would you kike to help me do the research on a study of mine workers in our country in this century?” “I’d love that. I can use the material to write a paper for extra credit in my English composition class.” We went to the kitchen for hot chocolate and a good oldfashioned bull session. I mentioned to him that Jenny had lent me two books on cultural history and miscellaneous trivia that her uncle, the college professor, had sent her. “I’ll leave them in the living room where both of us have access. Feel free.” That was the real beginning of our partnership. Dinah introduced Jimmy to Jenny and me at lunch the next day. I made a point of inviting both of them to the dance, telling Di that Mickey would be pleased to dance with her. 20 She responded with “I’m sorry, Cathy but my mom will not let me go to the white folks’ dance but Jimmy is coming over so I can teach him some dance steps.” She gave me a sly smile and a quick wink. Twp girls standing nearby, probably from one of the other school areas, spoke sotto voce as Di was leaving “Nigger lovers.” I could feel the heat rising to my face but Jenny moved directly to the girls. “What did you say?” Both of the girls began to stammer. Jenny put her heel onto one of the girl’s instep with just enough pressure to introduce a little pain. “If there is a next time, the pain will be ten times greater. Now let’s have an apology.” Both mumbled apologies a dashed off toward the exit. Jenny grinned, asking, “Is it ignormi or ignoramuses?” That was a pivotal time for Mickey and me. Over the next several years both of us moved to the top of our respective classes and in the process of cooperative study created a bond that cemented us together for a lifetime. We found a way in which we did our chores together, finding common subjects for conversation, sharing secrets and crying on each other’s shoulders on occasion. The one year’s difference in our ages disappeared as we developed a kinship as must exist between twins. Being poor never seemed to bother either of us in any serious way. In fact, because of it, we had experiences that enhanced our maturing process. What used to be chores, we found to be fun as long as we attacked them together. Mickey was a great joke teller and had me laughing hilariously. Hoeing weeds or picking bugs off the potato plants was a good time to talk about the new boy in class or Mickey’s latest hoped for a dream girl. We made a game of going with dad to pick 21 berries on the farms nearby. Pushing and shoving each other on the second limb of the apple tree resulted in my spraining a wrist and Mickey crying because he hurt me by pushing too hard. When we could we included Di and Jimmy in some of these activities. When the recession hit in nineteen fifty-seven, the mine closed down for several months, putting almost the entire community on welfare. We knew about something called the civil rights movement, which did not seem to apply to use just as we cared nothing about the president suspending nuclear testing. We were recession kids and we accepted our role as food fetcher, making daily trips to get milk and bread from the government handout office and on Saturdays to get flour and meat rations. We learned to harmonize and used those trips to practice our duets. When mother had a heart attack, we formed a team with dad. He took up some of our chores but asked help with others. He did the washing on Mondays and Mickey and I, under mama’s tutelage, learned to do the ironing on Tuesdays. Mickey and I teamed up taking responsibility for dusting, washing windows and scrubbing floors. Aunt Kate picked up the rest in order to give us some free time. In spite of being a brainy girl, I loved to compete in sports with the boys. They wouldn’t let me play softball but I insisted on playing touch football with them. They knew I was agile mostly from playing tag with me. As one of the boys once said “She can juke you out of your shoes.” Two person teams competed on the street, using the electric power poles as the markers for the goal lines. Since I was fast and agile, more so than Mickey or the other boys, I was the 22 star that every one wanted on their team. Those were glorious days, being accepted by the boys as an equal. Later they let me play basketball with them, mostly, I think, so they could rub against my breasts under the basket. That was fun for me, too. As was the custom in those days, the best students were chosen for all kinds of special opportunities, I was a beneficiary, being in most of the school plays, being chosen to run errands for the principal, chosen to do special readings in front of the class. I loved the attention and always drove to be number one in every facet of life. During my junior year in high school I was usually in competition with a boy named Johnny. By then, I was considered by our coach to be the top debater in our interscholastic debate team and had the lead in the school play, ranked first academically in the junior class and was in line to be the newspaper editor. Johnny played opposite me as the male lead in the play, headed the other two-man squad on the debate team and ranked even with me on grade point average. I found myself torn. My competitive juices spurred me to keep my advantage while my feminine side created fantasies of having his arms wrapping around lips and me locked onto mine. Recently, each night before drifting off to sleep I fantasized different scenarios in which he and I were in a romantic situation. I could see us walking home from school, my right hand held softly in his right hand the next night; I was floating in his arms at the junior prom. . While not a varsity athlete, he was not a nerd. Handsome, clean-cut features, almost six feet tall and all muscle, 23 he was in great shape as a result of cross-country running and jogging. His dad was the superintendent of the mine, which, in my mind, put us in separate social classes. It was during a lunch break in the spring that Johnny sat down next to me on the lawn at school. “Cathy, if I admitted that you are the best debater and smarter than I am, would you consider going to the junior prom with me?” I was blown off my equilibrium. Johnny wanted a date with me. It wasn’t possible that he had feelings for me as I did for him. My mind was in complete chaos. I guess it was typical for a girl to wonder if she could afford the right dress for the big prom. “Did I dance well enough because he sure must have had dancing lessons that I could not afford?” “Wow. Johnny. I sue wasn’t expecting that. I’m not even sure I was planning to attend.” “Oh, you have to attend. I’ve already started a campaign to get you elected as the prom queen.” I gasped. “You have? I haven’t heard anything like that.” “I know. I’ve asked all the guys to keep it as a surprise vote. I would be honored to be your escort.” “I don’t know what to say. We’ve never even had a coke date.” “If you said yes, then we could start dating.” “I’m all confused, Johnny. Why don’t we spend some time with each other once or twice before I give you an answer?” “I guess I can settle for that, but I want you to know I will do all. I can to convince you. How about we meet and have a coke after school and I walk you home.” 24 “Okay.” As we walked to class, I found my hand in his and shivered a bit from the pleasure I was experiencing. He bought a large coke with two straws, which caused me to giggle and him to smile. For some reason unknown to me I couldn’t stop giggling and knew I had to get a hold of myself. When I sensed his hand gently trying to find my hand under the table, my heart gave a little leap. He carried my books in his book bag in order to be able to hold my hand on the walk home. I loved it, experiencing wonderfully warm feeling but I removed my hand as we neared the house. Suddenly I was having second thoughts as we neared home. Without doubt, I had to invite him to meet my mom. For a moment I wondered about the differences and how he would view our home in contrast to the large house in which he lived. I decided to shrug off the worry. He would have known all about our kind of house. There were no secrets in this small town. I just knew my folks were the equals of any and if he had qualms, then this was a test. I had no way of knowing that my thinking through that concern was another pivotal point in my maturing process. “Mama. This is Johnny Wheldon. You’ve heard me speak of him as one of very best debaters and you saw him when we played opposite each other in the school play.” “Nice to meet you, Johnny. Welcome to our home. I’ve just made some iced tea. Would you like some.”? “I am pleased to meet you, Mrs. Cheka. Yes, I would love some tea.” 25 “Cathy, you can sit with Johnny in the living room or maybe the swing on the back porch would be cooler. Dad and Mickey are out for the next hour or so. I’ll bring you the tea Forty-five minutes later, Johnny was thanking Mrs. Cheka for the tea. I was holding his hand as I walked him to the front picket gate. “I’ll come by for you Friday at seven. That will give us plenty of time to get to the movie. It only takes a half hour to drive to the theater.” I hear that the movie “Flying Down to Rio” is a fun film with great music and dancing.” “I love Fred Astaire, Seven will be just Fine, Johnny.” Mama waited patiently for me to initiate the conversation. “What do you think, mama?” “He seems nice and a real gentleman, maybe a grade above some of your other boy friends. If you’d like to talk bout it, tell me about him and how this started.” I gave her the history of our competing, even mentioning his big disappointment when I became editor of the Panther, our weekly school newspaper. “He surprised me today when he sat down on the lawn next to me during the lunch break and invited me to the junior prom.” “What did you say?” “I told him I was surprised being invited to the prom when we had never spent any social time together. He said he was tired of competing and wanted to be my boy friend. All those minutes I was mentally struggling with the idea and wondering if we could afford a dress. I had not even planned on attending the prom. “How do you feel now?” 26 “I like him. To tell the truth, mama, I have been fantasizing about him even before this, never thinking it could ever happen.” “I take that as a yes for the prom. We can find a way to work that out. Between Kate and me we can design and sew a glamorous dress and find some shoes. A good girl like you should have a chance to reach beyond her natural limits, but you need to think this through.” “What do you mean?” “You may be at the point of believing you are ready for love and so may he. You need to see him on some dates in the interim to be sure you want to go with him to the prom. If you do, you probably will be invited to go steady.” “That sounds good. I have been envious of my friends who have steady boy friends.” “You have plenty of time for that in the future, dear. It is my guess that even if you both of you fall in love, his parents will not approve of the relationship for the long run. His mom in particular, is very snobbish and probably has dreams that extend well beyond the boundaries of Coalton.” I had every reason to believe my mother, who had been right about my boy friends up to that time. Knowing did not keep me from falling in love with Johnny. I was selected as the prom queen and must have been the envy of all the girls as this gorgeous hunk escorted me. Mama and Aunt Kate made good on their promise to make me glamorous From that date forward we became an item throughout the next year, spending hours taking walks, seeing movies and making out, teenage style, either in our living room or his or any place that we thought was private enough. 27 His dad accepted me warmly while I felt that his mother tolerated me, reminding me of my talk with mama. Regardless, I fell head over heels in love, knowing, that Johnny felt the same. We spent as much time as possible with each other even deciding to do some of our studies together, much of it I their family. His dad encouraged us to read articles and parts of books that supplemented or studies in history and geography. I guess like most teenagers I constantly need some reassurance. One afternoon, on a coke date, I asked him “Johnny, why do you think you found me attractive?” He looked surprised that I asked. “Aren’t you aware of your beauty?” “It must be something else. I can think of other girls prettier than I am.” “Yes. That’s true but not as beautiful. You have great looks but you have an infectious spirit, a keen sense of humor, encouraging your team mates and class mates. I never thought of doing an analysis. You just make my day when I am with you and make me eager to see you when we are apart.” I was literally glowing as I took his hand in mine. As our love deepened so did our physical desire. Looking back, I am still am amazed that we managed not to have sex. We both learned a lot about the physiology of the opposite sex. On date nights, just seeing him coming up the front walk would give me good bumps. His athletic build and tender touch could turn me into jelly and before he got to the front door I was visualizing his hands on my breast. Besides the physical attraction and the emotional ties we shared our dreams and hopes for our futures. 28 I lived in his dreams of being lawyer and then his change of mind of being and advisor to some future president of the United States. He listened with full empathy as I talked about challenging male opinions of the role of woman being restricted as homebodies or teachers at best. I shared my fantasies of being something more like a congress man a lawyer or a doctor. Saturday afternoons were special private times for us. We took our schoolbooks and held hands while we walked to the meadow outside of town. We exchanged new jokes, shared family news, and laughed at some of our family foibles. We spread the light blanket Johnny brought, settled down to help each other with our homework. Afterwards we lay back looking up to the wispy or sometimes cumulus clouds drifting overhead, speculating about our futures. It was during those moments that Johnny encouraged me to pursue my dream. Johnny had brought a few sections of the New York Times with him on this one occasion. I was deeply engrossed in some articles from the weekend magazine and turned sharply to Johnny. “Johnny This article by Mr. Reston is so moving. I want to be able to write like he does. I ve just decided that I want to be a journalist or at least a reporter “ He flashed a wide grin and said. “Good for you. I would do anything I could to help you. I wanted to asked “How would you feel about being married to a professional woman who was not home to cook your dinner each evening but stopped short. Being married to Johnny was my dream, but he had to tell me if it was his dream. The privacy we found was the bonus, the chance to escape inquiring eyes, while we made out after our serious study. I 29 remember later that particular Saturday afternoon when he shared my excitement to become a journalist. The more I talked of my dream the more enthusiastic we became. We lay on the long grass, warmed by the bright sun, holding hands. I was sharing my dream. “Oh, Johnny, I can see it so clearly. You are standing at the pier waiting to wrap me in your arms as I step out of the customs office after my TWA flight from London. I have just returned from getting a story of the tension between the Israelis and the surrounding countries. I am sure to get a Pulitzer Prize.” “I tell you about being in the midst of a raid on the Kibbutz where I was staying and you listening with rapt attention.” We laughed together as I lay out my fantasy but he was serious in his pledge to support me. The next time Johnny and I were together I was on my hobbyhorse again. Our conversation had been intense, my voice excited as I described a vision of being a columnist for the Pittsburgh Press or even the New York Times. I remember his saying, “Yes, yes. You can do it, Cathy” That was the moment when he clasped me in a joyful hug, the beginning of what became a passionate embrace. In that moment we both felt this desire to surrender to each other. The long and loving embrace took us beyond our usual boundaries. When he fondled my breast, our eyes met and I nodded, unable to say the words, but still giving him the green light. I reached to unbutton his shirt as he unbuttoned mine. To this day I can sense his cool hand reaching behind and unhooked the snap of my bra and then caressing my left breast and then his fingers moving in a circle around a firm rosebud. I was experiencing a range of emotions. My body was urging me to hurry my fingers so that I could welcome his body 30 deep inside mine. My fingers were shaking and fumbling as my mind was asking me if I really wanted to do this. I was experiencing excitement while I was frightened, but not knowing why. I could sense his rapid breathing and was aware of moans that were coming from somewhere inside me. There is no doubt that we would have totally surrendered ourselves to each other if the town bell hadn’t rung five o’clock. I jumped up. “Mama is going to be mad. I promised to be home before five.” We helped each other button up and then ran most of the way back, slowing about a block from home in order to catch our breaths. Mama didn’t scold me and did not ask why I was late, but I had a need to talk while we prepared dinner. “This afternoon Johnny and I were talking about our futures. He thought that I could qualify for a scholarship to Columbia that is really Barnard College for Women. I could take classes at Columbia, which has a great school of journalism? What do you think?” “Aren’t you reaching too high, honey? That seems to be a man’s field. I never see many women names as bylines. Let’s invite Kate over for dinner and talk about it.” Kate, as often was the case, surprised us. Just as mama opened up the subject, Kate sent me over to her home to pick up a book entitled the “The Second Sex.” I walked into the middle of their conversation when I returned. “Sis, I think it’s time for Cathy to read Simone de Beauvoir. Changes are coming.” “Kate, we disagreed the first time we read her writings and I guess we still do.” 31 “Don’t you think Cathy should read it and decide for herself?” “Not really. I think she can do without those new ideas in her head while she is a teenage an unable to grasp the true meaning. She will grow up in a world where men will dominate .and cause her nothing but frustration.” “I think you underestimate your daughter. She is a brainy one and with the knowledge in her head will make good judgments. Don’t you really think so?” “I guess.” “Any chance you’re hesitating about her choice to be a journalist has to do with your idea that a woman exists only to support a husband and her children?” “I’m not sure but I don’t think so, Kate.” I sat there stunned as I felt the tension underneath the polite language. I suddenly knew that the two women closest to me had different points of view about the way my life should develop. Kate said “Sis. Give her every opportunity to make good choices. You have been a great mother and raised a great daughter. You have prepared her to make her good decisions.” “Thanks, Kate. You’re probably right, but don’t you think trying to be a journalist is a little futile and thus frustrating and disappointing?” “Maybe, but my guess is that if the obstacles are too great, our brainy one will find ways to maneuver.” She turned to me “Sorry to talk about you as though you were not present but your mama and I have spent many an hour doing the same when you were on our minds but not present.” “Wow. I had no idea, but I need to read this book after listening to you.” I looked to mama for approval. 32 She smiled “I guess you are ready Up to now I haven’ been involved in approving or not your choice of reading.” Kate said, “Your mama is really a liberated woman. I doubt there are many women who have been as open with their daughters as she has been with you.” We talked for hours, Kate predicting that this book would be the basis for a new women’s freedom movement that was already stirring but mostly being ignored by most of society. I had no way of knowing, at that moment, of the deluge of change and protest that was about to be unleashed in the decade of the sixties. By the end of the evening I had a solid goal set before me, but it was a longtime before sleep came. The image in my head was that of Johnny and my being locked in the love making that we had started. The following Saturday Johnny phoned “Honey, would you wear that especially lovely blue dress for our date tonight? I want to take you to dinner.” I was excited about our first dinner date. Johnny seemed nervous when he picked me up to take me to dinner. He said little during the drive, while he held my hand. I wanted to ask but decided to wait for Johnny to explain. We talked about the usual things such as our latest debate tournament, a little about the success of our basketball team. His voice was a bit strained and he seemed a trifle uncomfortable. I could see that he wasn’t really into the conversation, somehow waiting for a chance to introduce another subject. We got through the main course and were waiting for dessert. He reached across the table, taking my right hand in his. I looked into his eyes and saw him blink as the first of many tear 33 drops cascaded down his cheek He tried to speak but only a croak escaped Having no idea what was happening, I rose and circled the table to put my arms around him to offer my empathy. “Honey, what has happened? Are your folks all right?” He pulled me down onto his lap, locked his lips onto mine for the longest time. Finally, able to speak, he whispered. “Everyone is well except me. I have sad news. Our family is moving to Canada.” It hit me like an explosion. In a flash I felt my life flying apart. My love was blown into smithereens. My lover would no longer be holding my hands sucking the air out of my lungs or caressing my breast or turning me into goo. There would be no private time in the meadow or the touch of my hand in his. Tears gushed unabated as my arms tightened around his neck. Johnny paid the bill immediately and we climbed into his car where we could continue to let our tears flow while he explained. We knew that despite our love, and promise to stay in touch, this was the separation and our lives were taking major turns away from each other into the great unknown. He promised to send his new address in his first letter, a letter that never arrived. I lay in bed that night still warm from being enfolded in the cocoon of his arms, dreaming of our life together while we travelled the world together in search of a story that would bring me the Pulitzer. On the fourth days after his departure I ran home to see if his letter had arrived. I shuffled the stack of mail on the kitchen table. Mama left the entire delivery each day to be sorted when everyone was home. There was no letter. Neither was there one the next day or the next. 34 I waited for his letter, the one that never arrived. Heart broken, I fell into a funk that may have been worse if it weren’t for my savior, my brother Mickey, and the constant love of mama, daddy and Kate. I poured myself into my studies, editing the newspaper, winning debate matches and tournaments and applying for scholarships. Mickey was there with me every step of the way. He had become my best reporter on the paper and became my debate team partner. He kept me fed with jokes, teased me and took my side when mama and I disagreed. There were, however, the nights before sleep arrived when I could not escape the memories and the disappointment of Johnny’s dropping totally out of my life. About a month after Johnny’s departure, I finally accepted a date to a school dance with Elmer Comma, a handsome and sharp member of our debate. I did my best to be bright and cheerful for Elmer’s sake. I think my face was wired into a constant smile that fell apart when he kissed me lightly on the porch when we parted. That turned out to be the worst night of the month. I missed Johnny so desperately and could not rid my mind of that feeling of being deserted. I cried into the pillow what seemed like a ton of tears, made the pillow case so damp, I had to turn it over when the tears finally stopped. “Oh Johnny.” I was desperate to fill the hole in my life. In addition to my required studies, I found every book on the subject of journalism that was on the shelves of our public and school libraries. I was becoming obsessed with the idea of being a becoming a world famous correspondent. 35 As editor of the Clarion, our school newspaper, I made sure that each issue was as professional as possible; making certain no errata was present. I wrote and rewrote each editorial and reached for subjects that I believed would stretch the minds of my fellow students. Mss. Finnegan, our counselor encouraged me to reach beyond my grasp, but had to rein me in when I submitted my editorial that was entitled “The Need for Sex Education.” She called me into her empty classroom for a consultation. Her first words were “I’m sorry, Cathy, but you will need to find another subject for your editorial.” In my subconscious I knew why but I wanted to challenge the school to deal with a subject that was very much on the mind of the entire student body. I was somewhat belligerent as I demanded “What’s wrong? I did a lot of research for the editorial.” Carefully choosing her words “I can see that you did you usual excellent work but the guidelines set forth by the administration has the subject on the prohibited list.” “I’ve never known about a prohibited list.” “I know, but I have and I can assure you that this subject is.” I objected. “But that is ridiculous. The subject is of intense interest to all the kids. All the girls talks about it when the boys are not around.” “I am sure you are correct but that doesn’t change the rules.” I continued to press. “I read that there are school districts in New York and California that has Sex Education within their curricula. Can’t we introduce the idea by, at least, discussing the editorial with the principal?” 36 “I already have. I verified your facts, and thought it was worth a chance, but the answer is a firm no.” I protested. “It’s only an editorial. How about I talk with Mr. Fosdick, the chairman of the board of education?” “That is your privilege, but I don’t think that is wise. He is responsible for the prohibited list and will take it as an affront, I’ sure.” “It’s so unfair.” “I know but wisdom may be the better part of valor. Your applications for scholarships will need endorsements from the principal and approval from the chairman of the board will go a long way to help. You know as I do that he is one of the most powerful and wealthiest men in the area.” I finally caved in. with a “Thank you, Miss Finnegan. I know you are and have been a big help. I always appreciate your guidance in personal matters as well as regards the paper.” Always with the thought of expanding the interests of the students beyond school, and in spite of criticism from my fellow student editors, I did initiate the insertion of one major world news article in each of our issues, The subjects included a range of stories including the South Africa mine disaster that killed five hundred workers, Russia shooting down our spy plane and pilot, Gary Powers of the CIA,, the Bay of Pigs disaster and the sending of 3500 soldiers to a place called Vietnam. The response from the readers was surprisingly positive even though few would bother to read those stories in the Pittsburgh newspapers. 37 When I was notified that I was the recipient of a full scholarship to Barnard which is attached to Columbia University in New York, Brother Mickey promised that he would join me there during the following year and he did. After all my school exams were behind me, I needed other activities to keep my mind occupied. I found ways to get myself to the Wheeling community library where I steeped myself in the biographies of journalists and the writings of the articulate women leaders in history. 38 Chapter 2. Nineteen Sixty-Two was an eventful year, with increased tensions between east and west. The Cuban missile crisis had the entire nation on pins and needles for days on end. Telestar, the first communications satellite was launched, marking a major revolution in that industry and strikes against all the New York newspapers stymied another communication vehicle. The other historic event was my departure for the Big Apple and separation from the coalmine pits and my roots. Several nights before I was to leave, mama and I had another of our woman-to-woman chats. I was so grateful for those opportunities we had to do that. Her love was always present whether we were dealing with my rebellions, my heartaches or my joys. I am now aware that during each chat a drop of wisdom was imparted that helped form me and prepare me for the challenges ahead. During that last time, she introduced one new and one old subject. “Cathy, if there is one thing I would suggest you remember from our conversations, it is that you don’t try to skirt your problems. Face them head on. There is only pain to be endured in evasion. As quickly as you can, go for the heart of the problem. I admired the way you let Mickey help you out of your funk instead of moping over what could not be helped.” “The other topic I need to bring up is a matter of sexual relations. Am I right that you have not had sex yet?” “Yes, mama.” “It is likely that you will have many young men either trying to seduce you or just inviting you to have sex. You know my feelings about making sure that the time is right. You will have to 39 make that decision. Daddy and I waited until we were married but the world is different today. Under any circumstances Aunt Kate is prepared to take you to her lady doctor to be fitted for protection.” “When you decide to have sexist will be wise to ask your partner to provide male protection to avoid the possibility of catching some disease. Ask the doctor today for some written material on the subject.” I asked a lot of questions and mama answered the best she could. I still think of mama and Kate as my best friends. I was to find that few girls had a relationship with their mothers as I did. Di and Jimmy were there the morning as we packed our gear into Kate’s car. She gave me a warm hug and her lat words were. “Thank you for being my friend .You have no idea how much easier my life has been in Coalton because of it.” Aunt Kate drove the four of us to Pittsburgh where I was to catch the Pennsylvania Railroad train to New York City, leaving at five in the morning. I was leaving Coalton with mixed feelings. My departure to a university was the fulfillment of the family dream for years and therefore should have been a joyous moment. We all were aware that that bond that had been developed over the years was being stretched and tested with the first of us on a journey away from the center, a journey that would lead to God knows where. We knew that another break, similar to this would be happening a year from now, when mama’s dream for Mickey dream would be fulfilled. The parting at the station was tearful, with hugs abounding and all four of them walking slowly along the track as I waved from my window seat on the train. 40 I had a lot of time for introspection during the long ride to New York. I tried to take a measure of myself. I was confident that the study classes would not be my greatest challenge. There would be the matter of interacting with the sophisticated young men and women from the metropolitan areas like New York, Philadelphia, and Boston. Some of the girls might even be from high society families. Would my clothes be fashionable enough or might I be embarrassed? How should I react when a date makes a mover on me? How will I know how far to go? My mind flipped back to Johnny and I sensed tears welling up behind my eyelids. “Oh, Johnny, where are you? Why did you not write?” My thoughts were interrupted as a shadow fell across the line of my vision. “Is this seat taken?” I look up to see a smiling face of a handsome young man with a hint of devil in his smile. I flashed my best smile and said “It will be if you take it.” He dropped into the seat and grinned. “I was almost afraid to interrupt you as I saw some worries flitting across your face during the two minutes I spent staring at you.” I could feel the doubts crossing my mind. “How do I respond to that?” I asked “Why were you staring?” He actually laughed. “It would be rude of me not to stare at a beautiful damsel sitting all by herself?” I felt a blush starting and quickly reached for a response. “Thank you for the compliment but I thought staring was rude: He ignored my comment and asked “Are you headed for Penn State or University of Pennsylvania?” I laughed “Nice pick up line, but the answer is neither.” 41 “What a shame. I was hoping in was Penn. I am on my way to enroll as a freshman.” That news seemed to relax me. “I’m on my way to Columbia to start as a freshman at Barnard.” I was suddenly aware that he wasn’t as self-confident as I first thought. It seemed to me that he relaxed a little and in no time we were exchanging information as two young people would do on their first meeting. I did find out that it had taken a real effort on his part to introduce himself. He was rather shy and just as I was, hesitant and worrying if he had the social skills to meet and mix with sophisticated upper classmen. By the time we stopped in Harrisburg, he had convinced me that he would do fine. He, in turn, was so flattering that I was developing a case of self-confidence. We lingered over lunch in the dining car, argued passionate about politics in the nation and in our state. We exchanged philosophical ideas and a some personal secrets, somehow knowing that our brief encounter would end in Philadelphia and our secrets would be safe in the minds of two strangers who had a few hours together. Left with my thought when I was alone, departing Philadelphia, I took a fresh look at myself. Seeing myself through Tim’s eyes, I had a new appreciation of myself. Tim saw me as brainy, warm, easy to relate to, passionate about my hope for the future and caring for those less fortunate than I. I found myself alternating between confidence and doubt with a variety of images flying through my mind as the train seemed to lumber slowly toward the city. I was both excited and fearful as I stepped off the train at Pennsylvania station in New York. Aunt Kate, my world wise counselor had instructed me on how to engage a porter, how much 42 of a tip to pay, what kind of a taxi to take and the approximate amount of the fare uptown to the Barnard campus. It was a beautiful sunny late afternoon, a light wind whipping up some bits of torn newspaper in tiny cyclones. I silently oohed and aahed as we traveled the urban caverns of this magnificent city I had a hard time adjusting to all of the noise of the city traffic. People on the sidewalks all seemed to be rushing to some destination. I don’t think I saw one casual stroller in all the crowds.” While we were stopped at a red light, I saw a man and woman arguing next to an open cab door, she suddenly jumping in and the cab scooting away. The crowds seemed to pay no attention to the traffic lights, crossing on red in front of the cab, the cabbie muttering and slowly forcing his cab into the crowd until they grudgingly parted, yielding to his right of way. The volume of neon signs at Times Square and the streetwalkers boldly peddling their wares shocked me. I felt like an Alice in Wonderland. I had been doubtful of the accounts I had read of the city before I had left home but no longer. The cabbie was extremely kind, helping me to get my bags into the tiny cubicle that I was to call home for a while. He refused to take the extra tip I offered him for his extra service. During the trip we had chatted just briefly. He must have taken a shine to me when we discovered we both were of Slav heritage. He had lived in the south side of Pittsburgh before coming to New York right after the big war. He laughingly said, “It was like we were almost neighbors.” I was excited and didn’t bother to unpack, hoping for a look around campus, getting oriented before I needed to show up the following day for registration. Since the sun was now playing 43 hides and seeks with a gathering of clouds, I slipped on a jacket and headed outdoors. Suddenly I felt the butterflies beginning to swarm in the pit of my stomach. Would I look like a bumpkin to one of the sophisticated city kids who had just graduated from some private academy? Was I wearing the right clothes? Would some senior simply snub me? I passed two girls deep in conversation that paid me no attention? “Were they ignoring me or simply engrossed in their own affair?” Less than fifty steps from the dormitory I heard “Cathy. Cathy Cheka.” I found the source and saw a grinning Paul Smythe, a competitor from another high school on the debate circuit. We had shared a soft drink on several occasions several years ago. He was from Wheeling and an excellent debater. “Paul. I can’t believe it. The first person I meet on campus is some one I have known before.” We shared a warm hug. “Where are you headed?” “I need a look around to get oriented before I register tomorrow.” “I’d be pleased to show you around and clue you on the layout.” “Oh, Paul. That would be great.” Forty minutes later we were ensconced in the coffee house enjoying a hot chocolate after the brisk walk in the coolish overcast afternoon. We had traded tidbits of information during our walk in between his giving me the lowdown on life on this campus. “Two big conversation pieces on campus at the moment are Vietnam and Roger Maris. I see by your expression that neither is on your radar. Well, Maris, a Yankee has just surpassed Babe 44 Ruth’s homerun record. Vietnam is hot because we just landed some troops there, which means a possible war and the draft of guys my age.” That news tugged at my heart as I thought about all the young men who would be affected including Mickey.” “That sounds ominous.” “I agree. Oh, here comes Anne, my girl friend. We’ve been going steady since last January. She’s a sophomore, a year behind me. “Anne, come meet Cathy, who is enrolling. She is from near my home town.” I looked to see a beautiful young woman who was dressed in a skirt and sweater identical to my own. She smiled warmly and gave me a hug. “Welcome to Barnard. Tell me about yourself.” We spent the next half hour trading information. Have you ever felt you met a soul mate who had dropped in out of the blue? Well, I did. Anne and I were immediately taken with each other, almost excluding Paul form the conversation for ten minutes or so. “Hey, you two. I’m here, too.” Anne laughed and gave him a wet kiss. “You, big boy, I have all the time, but she is special and new. Give us some elbow room.” He laughed with her and went to get her a drink while we barreled ahead; initiating what was to become a lifetime friendship. My roommate at the dorm had not arrived. I lay in the silent darkness saying a prayer of thanks for the day, knowing that I had landed safely and was ready to face my future assured that I had added to my support system. 45 With help from both, I knew which English comp instructor to choose and the same for my world history class. I was on my own for choices in physics, and political science. At this point I was not trying to focus on a major, just hoping for a good foundation. I did enroll in a language class, Russian 101. All I had to do was maintain a 3.0 average to maintain my scholarship. I managed a 4.0 in Russian and English comp and overall 3.9 during my freshman year. Mama and I exchanged letters twice a month while Mickey and I did so even more frequently. Often there would be a postscript from Aunt Kate. In November Mickey wrote that he had found a real bargain, getting a 1954 Leica camera with the bayonet mounting and the combination range finder and viewfinder. He promised to send me some of his more interesting snaps. The first few weeks of my new venture proved to be challenging. My roommate never did show. I was to find out later that she had decided not to matriculate to Barnard. On the fifth evening after my arrival, I had walked over to Broadway, in order to pick up a few small things to help decorate our room. It had turned dark as I headed back to campus. I was strolling along, humming to myself on a tree lined street, two blocks from my dorm. Suddenly a rather large male shaped form stemmed out from behind a tree. In a deep gruff voice he growled “Gimme your purse, girlie.” For a split second I froze. No one had prepared me for being mugged, although in the back of my mind, I recalled having read something about hanging onto one’s purse. That had never been even a hint of a problem in Coalton. 46 I didn’t see a gun, a knife or anything in his hands as he moved toward me, his right hand reaching for my purse. For some reason my mind slipped back to the days when I juked the boys during our street football games. Without a second thought I shouted “No way, mister. I feigned a move to the right and he leaned in that direction. I jerked to the left and was past him in a flash, fleeing like a deer and shouting “thief, thief.” I didn’t stop until I was at the door to the dorm which was in the process of opening to let out on of the students. She said “Slow down. No one is chasing you. Were you mugged?” Out of breath as I was, I said nothing, but I held up my purse. She grinned. “Nice going, but risky. You must be new to the City.” I nodded. She walked me to my room. At the door she said “I’m Jane Adair.” I grinned. “Thanks, Jane. I’m Cathy Cheka.” She smiled. “We usually walk in groups of three after dark, even on campus. I happened to be stepping out to wait for my date, who probably is wondering what, happened to m.” She dashed off. Three days later, I walked into the dorm room after class to find Moira, my new roomie, sitting on the floor with her boyfriend, smoking pot. In fact, the aroma was noticeable ten feet before I reached the door. I was furious. The presence of any forbidden substance in a dorm room was automatic suspicion. I turned, went down the hall to find Jane to be my witness. We returned to my room where I told Moira, she had thirty minutes to take the possession and move. She laughed. “No way, my dear Puritan.” I 47 Moved directly toward her, pulled her up to stand six inches in front of me. In a firm but quiet voice I said “I have a witness. Thirty minutes or I report you to the dean of students. Don’t mess with me.” She looked down for help from her boyfriend, who shrugged his shoulders, rose and left the room. Defeat was obvious. She said under breath. “Bastard”, but she began packing In a cold but even voice I said “I expect you to be gone when I return. You can arrange for your lines and blankets to stay until you find new quarters, but no longer than forty-eight hours.” Jane and I left the room. Jane invited me to wait in her room where I met her roommate, Sandy Fanon. In December I received from Mickey an astonishingly sharp black and white study of daddy arriving home from a long shift, obviously worn out; shoulders slumped in his overcoat that was lightly dusted with snow. He had caught the essence of daddy and a universal study of a coal miner. It was truly a work of art. Mama and I had agreed that it was too expensive to travel home for the Christmas break, but Aunt Kate sent a round trip ticket and drove the family to meet me in Pittsburgh. One evening during the visit Aunt Kate, Mickey and I went to the movies in Wheeling and stopped for a milk shake on the way home. When we were seated in the malt shop, Mickey opened an envelope, dumping six black and white stunning photographic studies of three miners, and two. Very tired women and a five-year-old girl full of wonder. I gasped at the emotion pouring out of those persons alive on the film. 48 Mickey handed me a hankie as he judged I was on the verge “Magnificent, little brother” was all I could get out of my mouth. Finally, I said “There’s a message for me, isn’t there?” “Just as sharp as ever, brainy one. I have discovered a talent I never even considered and finding a passion that I have to follow.” I laughed “You need help selling mama and daddy on this idea in lieu of joining me at Columbia?” With a big grin on his face he said, “I figured that if you join me and Aunt Kate, we will have a three to two advantage.” “That may not be enough but let’s hear the plan.” “I’ve made enquiries and found some scholarship money at an art institute with a great reputation. I can take some liberal arts classes at City College of New York at very little cost. With some part time work to earn funds and a small loan from Aunt Kate, I am sure this is doable. I’m convinced this is what I want to do, sis. .” The passion through his words and his body language was infectious. I sensed it and could see that Kate was as excited as he was. Laughingly, I said “Hey, little one. I’ve just been accepted to be a cub reporter, for the Columbia News because I am planning on declaring a major, journalism. We can become a team.” “Did you really get on the Columbia News?’ “Yes, but I had to do a selling job, being a girl and being a student at Barnard, but I made it “I know you’re joking about the team bit sis, but I have been seriously thinking of becoming good enough to be a photojournalist.” “I’m half serious having recently had a chance to hear a lecture by Margaret Bourke-White and doing some reading on Ernie Pyle and other war time journalists.” 49 “Wow.” Kate was beaming and said, “Sounds like you’re ready to join us, Cathy. If so, let’s beard the lioness in her den. This is her time for a cup of tea before heading for bed.” “Looks like you guys enjoyed the movie, judging from the grins on our mugs.” Mama was amused at her own quip. Aunt Kate responded to the implied question. “We did and then while we guzzled down milk shakes, we did a little organizing.” We had agreed that we had our best chance of selling mama if Aunt Kate was the point guard. “Organizing for what? Oh, I see. Three against one. Sounds like you think I need to be sold something” She gasped, “Cathy, are you pregnant?” “Oh, Mama. It’s nothing like that. In fact, this is not about me at all. I haven’t even been on a serious date although I am hoping to be asked to the Spring Fling.” “I’m sorry, honey. So what’s so serious that you need Kate to lead the interference?” It was impossible to read her face while Kate related the proposal, but she listened carefully to each detail then began asking questions. “Have you explored the cost of rooming and food in that expensive city? How far is your school from Columbia? Did you say you were going to take night courses at some city college?” Not one question about Mickey’s motivation Mickey gave her the best answers he had and said he still had research to do before he made a final decision. “That’s wise. It sounds like you’ve done good research and planning so far. You must know that I am somewhat disappointed because I thought we were into the same dream about your joining Cathy at Columbia.” 50 Mickey said. “Our basic plan was to be sure I didn’t get trapped into continuing another generation in the coal industry. I have been giving serious thinking about your hope that both of us would be well-educated citizens. I haven’t given up on that. My plan for night courses in English composition and history is the way I am trying to deal with that. If I don’t have what it takes in photography, I plan to pursue an undergraduate degree.” “But you won’t have a scholarship.” “Getting a scholarship to Columbia or some other major universities does not require matriculating that first year. There are exceptions I am not easing off my studies and plan to take the SAT’s and make applications for scholarships.” “Really? It sounds like my brilliant son has done his homework, a good sign. I’m sure that your dad will agree and you will have our blessing and support. We will need your assurance that your continued research gives you a green light. Promise?” Mickey promised, rose and went to hug mama, mixing his ears with hers. Life on campus rocked along beautifully. I was acing all my courses, breaking in as a cub reporter and participating in some intra squad debates. My friendship with Anne deepened, although our together times often included the love of her life, Paul. Two major events during the late spring helped to set the path for my life. One Sunday evening while having a coke with my movie date, I picked up a bit of conversation from an adjoining table Gently shushing my date and indicating that I wanted to eavesdrop I squeezed his hand and held on while I listened. The young man was telling his dater how he was voting three times in Monday’s election for the student governing board, a big deal on 51 this campus. My date was as shocked as I, although I now attribute that to freshman naiveté. We left the table shortly thereafter and found a pay phone. The editor of the News was available twenty fours a day. Twenty minutes later I was kissing my date good night, asking him to say nothing. I was off to a late night editorial staff meeting. By four that morning I was dead tired but too excited to sleep. We had devised a major plan to monitor the polling places, taking time stamped photos of all the fraternity voters. We worked discreetly unnoticed most of the day by the fraternity voters. At about five minutes before six, the closing time for the polls, Mort Sailor from the Phi Delta frat hose caught me taking his picture as he was presenting a fake ID to one of the monitors. We knew each other slightly, being in the same English composition class. We had chatted at the voting booths just after noon when I was standing nearby. Seeing me with camera in hand, made him realize that I had found him out. He blazed with anger, rushed at me, twisting my arm attempting to snatch the camera from my grasp. I screamed in pain and in fear as I resisted. I was not about to lose my evidence. We felt to the ground, Mort atop me. I saw his arm being raised preparing to punch me when someone gripped his arm and another pulled him off me. I was shaking in anger before I realized that I was bleeding at the elbow. Anne, who had witnessed the entire event, had found a first aid kit and rushed to my side while others were asking me if I was seriously injured. I was all right and soon my friends were moving away Anne told me that Paul had good photos of the melee and hoped the editor might use them in the story. 52 We went to press Monday night with a special edition with a dozen photos to illustrate the lead story and thee other stories of Fraternity Party cheating at the polls. The editor did not use the photo Mort’s attack but included the story without naming anyone. While I contributed to writing only one of the stories, I was given credit in a joint byline and a photo in a story that named as the discoverer of the fraud in the main story written by our editor along with my photo. I was the newfound hero to the active members of the Independent party. Quite often during the next few days, I was stopped on campus for a thank you. The other turning point came through a reference from my friend Anne. I have no idea how she managed but she set me up for an interview as a copyboy at the New York Times for the summer. Apparently they had some sort of summer intern program. I zipped down town on the subway and appeared ten minutes early for my interview, joining four other students, all boys, one that I knew from our News staff and two others from CCNY. I was so excited during the subway ride that I forgot to be scared. As I walked to the Times building, tension and sweat are part of what I experienced. I knew that I had to get this job, not only for the money but for a good first step toward my future. I still remember answering a dozen questions before I was ushered back to the outer room where I was to await further word. There were now five of us and another who had just gone into the interview room. 53 I initiated some conversation, hoping to ease the anxiety that was surfacing and found myself eagerly joined by all the others. It was after seven o’clock when Michael, the Columbia student, and I were invited back into the interview room. “Congratulations, you report on June 10th at eight AM for duty at the managing editors desk. Prior to that, you need to appear at the personnel office to complete all the usual paperwork and receive your orientation and indoctrination. I found Anne and Paul making out on their favorite bench, broke up the embrace to share the news and thank Anne. “Come join me for a drink to celebrate. You probably need to cool off anyhow.” The laughed and helped me celebrate what was to be the inauguration of my professional journalism career. 54 Chapter 3. My role in the election frauds on campus brought me into the inner circle of the editorial staff of the News. The editor took me with him to view the demonstration in Times Square of protestors against our participation the war in Vietnam and the possibility of young men being drafted into the military. That was in May. While that gathering was not a large demonstration it was one of the earliest, if not the first. It doesn’t take many young people, standing in the middle of the corner of Broadway and 43rd Street to cause a ruckus. The students are yelling, taxi cab horns are blaring, the cabbies are shouting at the demonstrators. Pedestrians are stopping on the sidewalks to see what’s happening. That little corner of Gotham is frozen. The few policemen are in no position to handle a group of fifty or seventy five demonstrators. Buzz and I had to shoulder our way through the crowd to get a front row spot. No sooner than we arrived I was caught up in the throng, which was shouting in unison. “Hell no, we won’t go.” amidst crudely created signs like “Draft Beer, Not Boys.” The explicit and implicit anger was frightening me, a simple country girl, but also stimulating I was shocked to see a gathering challenging the government of our country. I was expecting to be caught up in a rush by the police to place these demonstrators under arrest. As I watched and listened, it was so exciting that I had to remember to start writing notes instead of just being one of the protestors. I was not even sure why I was protesting. I identified with the young who could see no real reason for young soldiers 55 dying over some implied threat from communism. On the other hand I felt like I was being unpatriotic and a traitor. I had been taught and nurtured to love my country and our leaders. I set aside my mental struggles and started scribbling notes for my story. On the subway ride back to the campus Buzz, my editor, teased me about getting caught up with the protestors but reminded me that I needed to remember that I was reporting, meaning “Stay neutral and observe.” It was only the end of my freshman year and I had a second by-line on a key story. “Protestors March Peaceful.” I was fortunate to be taken on by the Times for a full time position during that summer of 1963, with a week off before school resumed. Hardly a day went by without some news story about anti-war demonstrations, particularly in communities near college campuses. It was a warm visit with my folks and Kate, I took walks in the fields outside town, lying down on a blanked where Johnny and I had traded personal secrets and pledge our love to each other. I let the tears roll for so long before I returned home. I wondered again why Johnny never wrote to me as he had promised and asked myself if I could ever get past this feeling of being abandoned. Mickey and I were ready to head back to the city and great learning opportunities and some adventures. The evening before our departure, my friend Dinah had joined us for dinner and a reunion. She was home for a brief visit from her studies at Morehouse College. In the course of the conversation she mentioned that she and Jimmy were headed for 56 Washington for the March where the Reverend Martin Luther King was going to deliver an address. The gathering was for hunger, civil rights and a protest to the Vietnam War. “Why don’t you ad Mickey join Jimmy and me before you return to New York?’ Mickey popped up. “Great idea, but where can we stay?” Di said. “We’ll find some shelter and sleep on the floor. It’s only one night and worth the sacrifice, isn’t it?’ “Hell yes. We decided to take the night train from Pittsburgh, which meant leaving soon, asking Aunt Kate to drive us .We made our hurried goodbyes with hugs and tears. Hours later, in the early morning we disembarked at Union Station .in the midst of thousands headed toward the Lincoln Memorial where I was about to have the experience of my life. The area in front of the Memorial was a sea of bodies, draped in a variety of colored shirts and sweaters. The mood was absolutely electric giving us the feeling that some thing major and moving was about to happen. Everybody was well behaved. There was bi jostling or pushing. It seemed that everyone was waiting with bated breath despite the appearance of many speakers before Dr. King was to appear. I was taken by surprise when new characters moved onto the stage and then suddenly I was joining in a loud welcome when the Reverend King appeared on stage. Just as suddenly the huge crowd went dead still as he began his address. Even to this day my eyes tear as they did with thousands of others when he called for a time when “Justice would roll down like waters and righteousness like a mighty stream”. By the time he got to the dream, my hankie was sopping 57 wet and I could not stem the tears when he began “I have a dream that one day this nation will rise up and live out the true meaning of the creed that we hold these truths to be self evident, that all men are created equal.” Di reached to squeeze my left hand while Jimmy was doing the same with my right hand. Mickey was holding Dinah’s other hand, each of us letting our tears fall unabated. I turned toward Di, unable to say a word. It must have been that way for Dil. She simply put her arms around me and soon all four bodies were enveloped in a group hug. I have only a faint memory of the end of the clapping and shout of bravo and amen. We were totally emotionally dry as we headed for Union Station where we hoped to find a space to rest our bodies until we could entrain for New York. We were in no hurry. Di and I both had some fruit stashed in our large purses, providing us a light bite while we kept rehearsing parts of the speech as we munched and strolled. Jimmy said, “Remember those words about coming to collect on the promissory notes given to all by our forefathers.” Di was recalling his references from the bible and the Emancipation Proclamation. Sore feet not with standing, we walked until we finally found a small place to plop down in a corner of Union Station. After a bit, Mickey got in line for tickets and we luckily were able to find space on the 10:15 special to New York. Hugs and tears were abundant as we boarded, Five minutes after departure I was sound asleep as the click clack sounded like a lullaby. Early the next morning I rushed to the News office to write up two stories, one for the News and one to submit to my boss at the Times. My view point was that of one of the thousands 58 who stood shoulder to shoulder to listen to the words of a great leader. Both stories were in print in the next editions. Partially because of my success on the staff of the student paper, my boss at the Times, Columbia alum, provided me some opportunities to do some minor reporting and some practice in rewriting some articles. He treated me more like a cub reporter than a copy girl. The day before classes began for the fall term, I corralled Anne to spend the day touring Manhattan. There was so much to be seen and understood and for a year I had not taken time to know the city to which I had become deeply attached. We took the subway downtown to visit the Statue of Liberty, Wall Street, Barnes and Noble book store, lunched in Chinatown and had coffee from a vendor’s cart near the Battery. We took a seat on a bench next to a young man, in his mid-twenties. He was wearing army fatigues and was engrossed in what I thought was an historical textbook. I sat next to him and laughingly teased him “Boning up for classes even before you start” He looked up, startled and then laughed: “Sort of. This is a text book from my last class before I was drafted and spent a year in Korea and a few months in Vietnam. Unfortunately, I took a slug that tore out some serious muscle in my left arm. I’ve been honorably discharged and start classes at City College tomorrow.” I had been struggling with my feelings about how the war protests were seen by men who were serving in the military. I asked “Do you have time and would be willing to talk with me about your experience. I am a reporter for the Columbia News and would like to write up a story for my editor.” 59 He said reservedly “I’m not sure that I have anything to offer.” Anne popped up “My friend, Cathy, is a good interviewer and I would be interested even if she does not write a story.” He was still reluctant but I said “I’ll even bribe you with an offer of a chocolate milk shake at that diner over there.” “If you also will have dinner with me, I’d be willing to try.” Anne and I busted out laughing and I said “It’s a deal.” We walked over to the café. When were settled in a booth and formally introduced ourselves, Mark said "Shoot the first question.” I asked “Tell me about being drafted when you could have had a deferment “ “It didn’t seem right that I would take advantage of the thousands of others who could not ask for a deferment and I guess I am a bit patriotic.” “How much can you tell me of your experiences in combat?” “I really don’t like to talk about it but I can tell you that I surprised myself. I wondered and wondered if I could truly shoot to kill someone whom I was facing close enough to see the face of my enemy.” “I did, perhaps because of all the training about the reason for our presence in Korea and then in Vietnam. I never faced a North Korean in actual combat but I did within three weeks of my arrival in Vietnam. The entire platoon with whom I served was moved from Korea to Nam. My squad, as I called it, my team, was as 60 closer than family. I no longer felt any self-doubt about shooting at the enemy, no matter how close. There was, I discovered, a compelling reason. In the first skirmish, I knew that failure to perform would put my buddies, my team members, at risk. My failure could, very well, cause them their lives. That was not going to happen.” “Like other parts of life, there are the larger goals for which we strive, so it was in Nam. The larger goal was fighting for our nation but the real reason to kill was to protect your brothers.” I tried to press him to tell us some of the details but he sidestepped my questions and told me stories their camaraderie. After he finished his second milk shake, I Was about to press him again for some details of actual combat, but he pre-empted me with a statement. “Whatever, you write, Cathy, please do not use my name. This is the last day I will wear these fatigues. I don’t want any of my fellow students know that I am vet.” I was stunned. “But, you should be proud of your service and your purple heart.” “I am but the attitude among college kids seems to be one of hatred or the war and for anyone who has participated. I took a two week refresher course on campus recently and listened to some of the conversation on campus. One would think I am a traitor as you listen to the conversation. I find myself seething underneath and want to kick their asses, but, of course, I just walk away.” I felt a sudden rush of tears and anger down deep. It was one thing to oppose the war but to show disdain for a veteran was deplorable. Anne and I both reached across the table to take his hands in ours and held on for several long moments. 61 “You can print that. In fact, I hope you do.” He suddenly laughed “Now, let’ talk about that date.” I squeezed his hand “”When?” “Are you free tomorrow evening?” I giggled. “No grass is growing under your feet.” He laughed again. “Strike when the iron is hot.” “Where do we meet? I can take a subway to meet you.” “Oh, no. I take it you live on the Barnard campus. I live near Seventy second and Broadway. I know a nice little bistro near Ninety-Sixth. I’ll pick you up in a cab. What time?” “You name it.” We had a fun time on that date and two other dates before studies, work and divergent interests brought the relationship to a close. My sophomore year was mostly a grind, working off my required courses, hustling stories for the News, grabbing the subway to put in hours at the Times, where I felt like some kind of a hybrid, doing some rewrites, helping to write some obits, all this along with running errands. Along with my studies I was a human dynamo running on adrenalin and very little sleep. One afternoon at the Times my boss had to awaken me from a catnap. I was on my rest period in the coffee room where I had put my head down resting on my arms at the lunch table and fell soundly asleep. I managed to find a little time with Mickey, who usually came to visit me. My friend Anne usually found a half hour for tea or coffee several afternoons during his week. We had 62 much in common. Her boyfriend, Paul, teasingly accused her of being closer to me than to him. I had a few dates, thanks to Anne, but held myself back. Almost all of the guys seemed surprised when I declined their offers to let them bed me. Like most girls my age I had moments of sexual fantasy, often mixed with memories of the woman to woman conversations with mama. I wanted my first to be special. There also was a chance that my first lover might be my only although that was never a primary thought. Perhaps, sublimely, I was waiting for a clone of Johnny, There was so much to do and so much to learn. Registering for the second term that year I managed to get into a journalism class to my surprise and was able to get into an advanced writing class. Most evenings were demanding of time for composition and story writing. The long hours of work and study and the lack of rest showed up as weight loss. It was only because of the pressure from Bill, my boss at the Times, Anne, Paul and Mickey that I began to include food as a regular part of my daily activity. At least two nights a week it was Anne who shooed me off to bed. While the attendance at the “I Have a Dream” had been the most glorious day of my young life, November 22 was the darkest. At one forty four P.M., just a I had just walked into the office of the News, I saw the entire staff gathered around a radio broadcasting the news of JFK’s assassination .A pall descended on the whole group Someone turned up the volume so that we could hear the news while at our desks. I was trying to stem the flow of tears when the editor yelled my name a waved me into his office. “Isn’t this a work day for you at the Times?” “Yes, it is. I’m due at three thirty.” 63 “Do you think you could go in early and gather some news from their sources? Ask your boss if you can relay any of it back to Mary here as we try to put through a special edition?” “I’m on my way.” I shed my tears on the subway ride because there would be no time once in the office. Bill gave me permission to work off the Teletype and relay any news I picked up from that source. I spent each minute available from my duties, reading the tape and phoning the information back to Mary. Bill asked if I could stay on an extra two hours beyond my regular shift. When I finally returned to the campus, all my friends were gathered at the coffee shop relating stories of JFK, sharing their feelings and wondering about the future of a country that would no longer have our hero as its leader. Someone of the crowds stood and said, “The campus chaplain is conducting a silent prayer service at the chapel. Without a word the entire group joined him in a walk to the chapel. I sat in the silence, lost in my thoughts of the hero of my generation, his charming wife and two young children who would only know their father through the stories others told of him. It would be days before the cloud of despair was lifted. The entire country and certainly the campus were in mourning for three days, until the day after the funeral. . Life does go on and the study and work that makes for survival usually has a healing effect on the soul. My boss at the Times, Bill Calhoun, continued grooming me at work, introducing me to some of the big time 64 journalists, sending me out with a reporter or occasionally alone, on minor human interest stories. I realized that Bill was using my job of copy girl to groom me in the ways of journalism. He even suggested I return to hang out on the fringe of the gathering of the staff after the paper had gone to press. Bill used me a messenger to deliver some memos to Mr. Reston, popularly known as ‘Scotty’. He wanted me to meet a great journalist who had won two Pulitzer prizes. I was thrilled when Mr. Reston asked me my name, during my second visit. I remembered telling Johnny that I hoped I could write as well as Mr. Reston. Bill insisted that I take time to go the morgue to read both those stories, especially the one of the meeting of leaders from around the world at Dumbarton Oaks, where they laid the foundation of the new United Nations. He also insists that I read as many of the published interviews he had conducted of world leaders during the last twenty years.” In April, Bill was selected to be the Political Editor in the City Department and found a position for me as a junior rewrite editor .in that department. I was offered a full time summer job with a week off at the end of the summer so I could visit my folks. Mickey, who had the summer off from his photographic studies, enrolled in two summer classes at Cit College and had more time to spend with me, usually several evenings a week. He had found a part time job as staff photographer for a regional paper on Long Island It was that summer that we decided that we would attempt to become a team of journalist/photojournalists as our beginning careers when I finished my undergrad work I 65 remember that it was the July Fourth weekend we wee spending on Fire Island. We were waiting for the fireworks display when Mickey started talking about the dream of working with me. “Oh, bro, what a great idea. I love it. We need to start doing some research.” “I’ve already started. It looks to be a fairly rough road, at least at the beginning but I like the challenge and a chance to spend a lifetime doing what I love.” I hardly remember much about the fireworks having been caught up in the planning and Mickey’s enthusiasm. “Sis, what kind of stories should we be looking for? Thye probably need to be local since breaking into jobs with the major papers will be almost impossible.” “I don’t know, sweetie. We have to do some research. It would be great if there were some way to get to Vietnam and become war journalists.” “Dreamer. Besides, the military will never let women any place near the shooting. “You’d be surprised.” “You don’t think you would be too scared. I’m not sure how I would feel about being in the army fighting in those jungles.” “Of course, you and I will be scared, but that doesn’t mean we can’t overcome our fears.” “I guess you’re right, as usual. You know, sis, you’re strong like mama. I’m looking forward to our working together.” He put his arms around me and held on for a long minute. In that moment I knew that my little brother was now my partner and probably my protector. I felt a tear forming as I quietly thanked God for putting Mickey into my life. 66 Among the many staff members I had met at the Times was the chief photographer for the city department. We had had coffee together a few times and on several occasions I had run some in house errands for him. That following Monday I went looking for him about coffee break time, inviting him to join me. “Sorry kiddo can’t leave my desk but we can chat if you can bring me a cup while I await a couple of phone calls.” Jay was close to my dad’s age and had been with the Times for almost twenty years. He listened carefully as I told him about Mickey and me and our latest dream. “We need some guidance, Jay. I hoped that you might find a little time to talk with us.” “I’d be delighted. Since my family is away for a few weeks, how about the two of you having dinner with me some evening this week?” “Great, but you have to let us buy.” “We’ll see. How about Wednesday?” “It’s a date. You are sweet, Jay. I owe you.” “Listen kid. You have done so many favors for me already. I consider you are prepaid. Wednesday is a date.” Jay insisted we talk about ourselves during the mealtime, about our childhood and teen years together. He was particularly interested in how we bonded so closely during those years as well at present. During dessert and coffee he took us through the educational requirements to find a position with the Times, the multitude of duties he had to perform besides shooting pictures. “You would have to develop film and crop pictures for use in the stories, Photographers have to read the story being planned and perhaps plan the story with the reporter. Some times I have to 67 make phone calls to set up photo dates and I always have my fire and police scanners on alert for picture opportunities.” Filled with information and spurred on with greater desire, Mickey asked, “How can I judge if I have what it takes?” “I’d be delighted to be a sort of tutor for you. My two girls aren’t the least bit interested. Why don’t you start creating a portfolio and call me for another get together?’ I could see my brother’s eagerness as he said. “That is marvelous. I have a lot of negatives, some from my recent news photos. I’ll call you soon. Thank you.” I said “Jay, this is beyond my hopes when I asked you for some guidance.” “Yes, I know but Mickey makes me think of the son we lost.” I could sense the immediate change in Jay. “Is it something you can talk about.”? “It’s hard but I can brief you. Our Jeff would be Mickey’s age. He was our first born, a great kid with a good sense of humor and enough of a rebel to show promise.” “He earned a scholarship to M.I.T. and was planning to study Electrical Engineering. He had been a star basketball player but turned down an athletic scholarship to Maryland U.” “On Senior Picnic Day, he and some friends decided, rather foolishly, to see how far they could swim out to sea. Whatever happened to him will never be known.” His voice broke and he choked before continuing. “H was fifty or more yards ahead of his closest buddy when he went under and was never seen again.” Jay began to sob and I, with tears spilling onto my cheeks, moved to put my arms around him, as did Mickey. We 68 stayed that way until Jay finally was able to compose himself. “I’m sorry. I thought I had that under better control.” In the months that followed Jay made himself available to Mickey a couple of evenings a week and many week ends. About five months later while we were having dinner, I asked Mickey what kind of study or work was involved during the many hours he spent at Jay’s home. His face broke out into a full flush as he stammered and finally sheepishly admitted that much of the time was spent with Jay’s oldest daughter, Julie, a student commuter to City College. I laughed and teased him. “You, sly dog, have been keeping secrets from your big sis. How come?” “It was pretty casual until very recently. Julie is a big sports fan and. teased me about my interest in taking pictures. I remember her saying on the very first day that Jay introduced us “With those shoulder and height, you’d make a great point guard for the City College varsity.” “She coaxed me into a one-on-one hoops game in their backyard. Despite my high school varsity experience, poor me, lack of conditioning with no recent practice, I was totally outclassed.” “Things slowly developed from there. We managed some hoops each visit, usually followed with a cup of coffee and homemade pie, baked by her, after each game. We worked together on our assigned composition homework. She has a flair for writing just like you, sis and has helped me a lot.” Mickey paused and I waited for him to go on, and then needled him into more. He yielded with “She was delighted when I invited her to a movie date. She held my hand through most of 69 the movie except when I had to lend her my hankie during the romantic scenes “ “We held hands on the bus to her place from the movie and I found no resistance on the back porch swing. When I leaned in for a kiss, to tell you the truth, sis, I was a goner from the evening on. She had been dating another grad from her high school and continued. Last Sunday we spent the afternoon having a picnic in a nice meadow and talked rather seriously about our hopes and dreams.” He stopped as though that was the end of his tale but I wasn’t letting him off the hook. “Come on. Give. Something special happened there in the meadow.” “Dammit, sis. We didn’t have sex, if that’s what you think. What happened is that she said she loved me and I told her I loved her. That’s a bigger thing than just having sex. Why am I telling you all this?” “Because there is no one else. I am your closest friend. Anyhow, I’ll bet you’re bursting to tell me,” He laughed and continued. “It was she who took the lead. I will never forget the moment. It was chilly but we had brought three blankets. We were laying silently, our thoughts apparently running in parallel. I felt myself getting tense as loving images of us together in the future flitted through my mind. A quick vision of lying with her in front of a fireplace, then a picture of her walking down an aisle toward me. All those crazy images kept dancing across the screen of my mind.” “. I could see us walking hand in hand on a country lane. Crazy images emerging from my sub consciousness, made my body wind up like a top. . I felt I just had to pull her into my arms and sense her body melting into mine.” 70 “At that moment. She turned, put the back of her hand on the side of my jaw, moving it slowly down toward my chin saying, “Mickey, I love you.” “I gasped because it was the same thought I was having. I took her face in the vee of my left hand, pulled her gently toward my lips and kissed her deeply, then said “Julie, I also love you.” “We both shed tears of joy and made out with passionate kisses and hugs then lay back under our blanket and pledged ourselves to each other for a lifetime.” “So, what comes next?” “We’ll see each other as often as possible. She promised to tell no one except her closest friend just as I did. We are not talking wedding until she graduates.” “Mickey, that is marvelous. I am so happy for you. A little something special for Jay who will be getting the son he so wanted.” “Sis, you don’t seem to be dating much. I don’t understand why a gorgeous woman like you isn’t the subject of pursuit at all times.” “I’ve dated some but nothing sparks. I love my work and my studies and most every date seems to think we ought to end up in bed. There needs to be more to a relationship than sex on a first date.” “Do you still think of Johnny Wheldon?” “Occasionally. What does happen is when my date is pressing me, I think of the loving and tender ways Johnny treated me. Hey, enough about my nonexistent love life.” In April, I caught a real break. I got was given an assignment for the Columbia News to travel to Washington for 71 the big anti war demonstration led by the Students for Democratic Society (SDS). I had to ask my boss if it was possible to miss three days of work. When I told him the reason, he agreed to have me write a report for possible publication and offered to pay my expenses. Since I would cost nothing to the Columbia News, I asked the editor for some expense money for Mickey to accompany me and he agreed to a modest sum .to defray transportation and meals. SDS, the Students for a Democratic Society were considered by most traditional thinking citizens as a new left, radical threat to our way of living in the United States. Up to this time, their primary method of operating was teach-ins on campuses across the nation Campus chapters of SDS all over the country started to lead small, localized demonstrations against the war and no tow war began resounding in the demonstrations. The national office organized the march against the war in Washington on April 17. Endorsements came from nearly all of the other peace groups and leading personalities, there was significant increase in income and membership. There now were 52 chapters. The media began to cover the organization. However, the call for the march and the openness of the organization in allowing other groups, even or communists themselves, to join in caused great strains with the some other old left organizations. That was part of the original grouping. 72 The night before the march, while twenty thousand or more were gathering, I wangled my way into an informal gathering of some of the SDS leaders. During the next twenty four hours I became aware that the antiwar demonstration was primarily a tool for recruiting followers who would support the SDS goals of radicalism, student power, and direct action, violent, if necessary. It seemed not to bother the leaders that I was a reporter. In fact, they probably wanted any kind of publicity. Meanwhile Mickey used his camera to good effect, getting photos for the leaders and some studies of serious small groups in passionate debate as well as strident speakers at some plenary sessions On the train ride back to New York Mickey said. “These guys are scary. While they have a lot of great words about international peace, eliminating poverty and so forth, their rhetoric and anger scares me. I think they are headed for a major confrontation with the establishment at some time which will be their undoing.” The News used three of my stories and five of Mickey’s photos while the Times used one photo and a stripped down version of my story on the goals of the SDS. Nevertheless, it was a turning point and a key building block in my professional development. My boss. Bill, as the political editor of national news department requested my services as a student reporter for campus political news. I was being asked to gather political news from campuses across the nation for a new sub section in the Times being devoted to the voice of students in political affairs. My boss wanted all the hours I could devote for the balance of the year and full time during the summer of 1965. Success is always a mixed blessing. The new position meant I could not afford to continue working with the staff of the 73 Columbia News. Time was a precious commodity. The staff held a sort of wake one evening with plenty of booze to loosen up the sad faces of my university family for most of three years. The more I became involved with reports of student positions regarding the Vietnam War, the more my mind dwelt on the young men who were putting their lives on the line. I took time each evening to read reports from Vietnam. I read every word by Gloria Emerson, the New York Times reporter who had been in Vietnam since the French occupation. The detailed stories by Dicki Chappelle who lived twenty four hours a day with the Sixth Marines were vivid in their portrayal of the sacrifices being made. I had read the biography of Marguerite (Maggie) Higgins who had paved the way for women correspondents in war zone. I was intrigued with her stories of the women and children in hamlets and villages. Anne and I were having dinner together, splurging with pre dinner martinis and New York steaks. While waiting for the steaks, Anne said, “Cathy, I guess you’ve decided on a life vocation. Journalist? Right?” “Absolutely.” “How do you see it unfolding? Do you think you can get a job with the Times?” “I hardly think so. Mr. Calhoun has taken me under his wing, but the experience will not be enough for a job with the Times. With some interim experience working a few years elsewhere, I might have a chance. What I really want to do is to find a way to find an assignment in Vietnam.” “Are you crazy?” 74 “Maybe I am. I’ve been reading all the reports coming in from Gloria Emerson who is the Times reporter in Vietnam and reading what I could about Dickey Chapelle, who traveled every place with the 6th Marines. I have this urge to try to emulate them.” “It seems so risky, Cathy. There must be more going on in that head of yours.” “Ann, you know how it is there is more than one thing stirring in my brain. Working with all the stories of the protests and finding out that there are more selfish reasons than altruistic motivations for those protests, I feel this pressure to be alongside and write the stories of those marines and soldiers on the front lines. “Also, I have been doing a lot of study about the role of women in politics, business and the professions and I feel that I need to help do anything I can to move that cause along. “ “We are on the verge of a major push by women to rise above their limited lot in life. Have you read Betty Friedan’s book “The Feminine Mystique?” “No, I haven’t but I’ve heard other women friends talking about it.” “Anne, it is a must read. Women are being given an impetus to fight for more freedom, particularly in public life. I happen to know that there a lot of women trying to get assigned to Vietnam with the idea of making their presence as journalists a matter of fact instead of an aberration. I want to be one of those women.” “Wow. You are a terrific, Cathy.” “Anne, I not only need to get there but I need to find an important enough sponsor to be recognized as a professional. In fact, my real dream is to find an assignment in which Mickey is 75 teamed with me as a photojournalist. He has become a real professional and is getting a reputation.” “I have no doubt that you will find a way. Here comes our waiter” She raised her glass “Here’s to the modern Brenda Starr.” Fifteen minutes later we were interrupted when a beautiful black young woman stopped by to greet Annie. “Elsie, meet m closest friend, Cathy. Please join us.” “I wouldn’t think of it. Yu two seemed to be enjoying a special moment.” “It was but we would be honored.” She took Elsie’s hand and pulled her into the seat. “Didn’t you tell me the other day of your interest in applying for a reporter position on the Columbia News?” “Yes I did.” “My friend Cathy Cheka has been a stalwart with the news and works part time with the New York Times. Cathy this is Elsie James.” “Wow. You’re that Cathy? You’re famous on this campus. It’s exciting to meet you.” Embarrassed and blushing I thanked her. “Why do you want to write for the News? “I was editor of my high school paper. My dad is publisher of the Harlem Herald and I am interested in politics.” From that moment the three of us we were of and running, comparing stories and asking questions. She was asking me all the right questions. It seemed that within the space of twenty minutes I had made myself a new young friend. Annie asked, “Since I am not having dessert do you mind if I leave while you two do your newspaper thing. I want to see Paul.” She left, hardly noticed b us as we kept delving into 76 each other’s journalism interests. Before we were ready to leave, Elsie had volunteered to work with me in my new project and I would introduce her to the editor of the News. It is amazing the way a chance meeting can lead to a new and long lasting friendship that played an important part in my journalism career. 77 Chapter 4. Within three weeks, in my new job, we had set up connections to seven campuses, students eager to feed news of political actions to national media. On May 5th I had a call telling me of a march by several hundreds student carrying a black coffin to the draft board offices. On arrival, approximately forty young men burned their draft cards. When I told my new boss that a similar special event was being planned in Berkeley on the twenty-first, he asked if I could take the time for a trip. That left Elsie to handle the office. The event was sponsored by a group known as the Vietnam Day Committee and was a three-day teach-in. My contacts and I organized a method for counting as many participants as possible, eventually estimating approximately twenty thousand attendees. There were students from other schools, citizens, Cal students and members of the faculty. The three-day event was generally peaceful. On the second day some students marched to the draft board where nineteen students burned their draft cards The gathering, where the President was burned in effigy, bordered on chaos with yours truly caught right in the middle. I don’t mind saying that I was scared until cooler heads managed to keep the demonstration non violent. I learned a lot about human action and reaction in the midst of that near riot. I had studied a little about mob psychology in class and learned that often in crowds individual lose their selfawareness. They are less likely to follow normal restraints and inhibit tons and more likely to lose their sense of individual 78 identity. Groups can generate a sense of emotional excitement, which can lead to the provocation of behaviors that a person would not typically engage in if alone. Observing and talking with some protestors made me aware that all kinds of people joined protests with their own anger and an agenda that had nothing to do with the movement. I interviewed two students who were angry with the university and one professor whom they felt treated them poorly. The cursing and other demonstrations of personal anger was indeed a surprise In the middle of the pushing and pulling, I caught an elbow in the face when I tried to stop a teenage student from using her magic marker to write obscenities on the marble walls of a building. She turned on me and was about to take a punch. I am grateful to some strong male who came to my rescue. During the next eighteen months I delivered stories of political action on seventeen campuses including a major flop in Oakland, California in July. One of the major stories was from the University of Iowa, where a student, Stephen Smith. Spoke, at a rally, and burned his card, resulting in arrest and three years probation. I received two special commendations from my boss. One was for uncovering the fact that that by early 1966, over two million students had received deferments while one hundred and eighty thousand men were drafted. The second was my breaking story that Robert McNamara was to be the subject of a mass protest at Harvard in November. A veteran reporter was dispatched to Harvard for that story. The news of the coming demonstration was my final story. I had received my degree and was eager to move on I still 79 found myself of two minds regarding the protests, particularly as I read stories by Gloria Emerson, the Times correspondents in Vietnam. I was certainly in agreement with those who opposed our presence in Vietnam. I had been privileged to become trusted by some of the protest leaders and thus involved in some one on one conversation about the depth of their feelings and the logic of their positions. I was also drawn to an empathy with the young men who were drafted and had placed their lives on the line in a war zone. I had this developing strong urge to write their story as well. Elsie, Annie and I had lunch at least once each week. On several occasions I accompanied Elsie to her home in Elmhurst on Long Island to have dinner with her folks and Joshua, her boyfriend. On one occasion she and I walked about twelve blocks down 125th Street to visit her dad’s news plant before going home for dinner. It was the first time I walked down a street seeing not one other white face on the crowded sidewalk. It was rather intimidating until I realized the friendly greetings that Elsie and I received from shop owners and a few friends. I learned a lot about Harlem history and had a grand tour as Mr. James drove us through the business district, the residential areas and some of the tenement areas, providing an eye opening experience. Time was running short. It was time to start earning a regular income and I needed to land an assignment as a reporter in Vietnam. I knew that if I took a regular position with any 80 newspaper I would have to agree to a minimum term and could never achieve my dream of getting to Vietnam. I steeled myself to make the rounds, begging if I had to. I felt certain that some woman’s magazine would want to have a woman rep in Vietnam, letting their readers know that women were as ready as men to take face risk in order to provide the truth. There was no sense in tying major newspapers or magazines. They had reporters already in the war one. Perhaps the women magazines might be receptive. During the next two days I made the rounds of Vanity Fair, Redbook, Vogue, Cosmopolitan and Elle, I struck out on all counts but was determined not to give up. I did find some interest from some Long Island regional papers but I needed more if Mickey and I were to be minimally supported. My job at the Times was coming to an end. Jay came over from the photography unit to see me on my last day at the Times and invited me to dinner after work. I agreed and cleared my desk and went to a late lunch with the boss and some of my fellow staffers. The champagne flowed freely and the party was still going when I finally set off for Jay’s home Phyllis, Jay’s wife, welcomed me with a big hug, invited me to have a seat in the kitchen, then pouring me a large mug of hot coffee. “It seems someone threw you a party, Cathy.” “Yes. As you can see, I am still a little woozy. Thanks for the coffee. Today was my last day at the Times.” An hour and a half later, stuffed to the gills with roast beef and all the fixings I was totally relaxed when Jay asked. “You and Mickey still plan on pairing up and hoping for a joint assignment to “some dangerous place?” 81 Mickey responded ´My deferment is up meaning I need to enlist or wait to be drafted unless I can get a posting to take pics in the war zone. . I’d rather be there with sis on assignment doing what I do best, because the recruiters tell me there is no guarantee that I can be assigned as a photographer.” I looked at Julie and saw the tears flowing down her cheeks as Mickey calmly made his statement. I said “I have some feelers out with some regional papers in New Jersey and north of the city who may be interested in sponsoring me. They think it might be nice to have a byline from Vietnam over a woman’s signature. I haven’t been able to get them to spring the dollars for the two of us.” Julie knocked over her chair as she jumped up and dashed out of the room, followed immediately by Mickey. I saw the tears start to drop from Phyllis’ eyes and could sense mine about to do the same. She stood to clear away some of the dishes and said, “I’ll make some coffee and get the dessert.” When she was out of earshot, Jay said, “If you can swing your deal with the papers, I am sure I can set up Mickey. Our trade association and the news photographers’ union want to show our support for the young men who are fighting on our behalf, particularly because they are becoming the victims on behalf of the politicians. What do you think?” I rose to give him a warm hug that got a rise from Phyliss as she rejoined us. I said “We just need to fix it with Mickey’s draft board, which is back in Pennsylvania.” It was time to say good-bye to my former colleagues at the Columbia News, particularly Elsie and also Annie who was doing some post grad work. 82 Spring of 1967 The most difficult gathering was during our trip to Coalton. There was no way to avoid the tearful family get together before the only two children headed off to the danger zone. While we were there, Mickey and I spent hours taking long walks to strengthen our legs as well as doing morning calisthenics. The two of us spent hours studying the EnglishVietnamese dictionary and grammar books hoping to be able to make rudimentary conversation with the Vietnamese residents in towns and villages. This practice continued through the long hours of the flight to Southeast Asia. I hardly slept the night before we departed from San Francisco for the long flight to Saigon. At firsts my mind was filled with doubts about taking my little brother with me into a war zone where each day would put him at risk. I remembered how mama was worried about losing her only two offspring. My mind kept filling with imaginary battle scenes in which we were huddled down in some undergrowth in a jungle. I have no idea how or from where those scenes emanated. I asked myself “How will I react when I hear for the first time a shot fired in anger and aimed at a human body?” Thinking about mama’s worries took me back in time when as a youngster in elementary school, she helped me with reading, spelling and arithmetic. I had this visual image of her shucking some corn as I read from my third grade reader, her apron catching the leaves and corn silk that escaped her grasp. I thought about our woman-to-woman talks when I was in my teens and the rules she set down, expecting me to rebel and become my own person with good solid underpinnings. 83 The last thing I remembered before falling asleep was lying in Johnny’s arms, his lips nestled into a hollow just below my left ear. I was sitting next to the port window on the flight, deep in reverie when Mickey jarred me back to the present. “Sis, how do we get to the combat zones with all the opposition that General Westmoreland has to women staying in the field with the marines and soldiers?” “I talked with two women who spent six months in Vietnam They gave me some tips. One of them said that “there is little resistance to women reporters at the lower echelons. In fact, the enlisted men like it because it is a small victory against the brass. Their platoon and company leaders want to keep them happy. My new friend told me that young helicopter pilots never turn down a request for a ride from the women if they can make room,” “By the way, Mick, I have a bit of good news. I called my boss at the Times and told him I was leaving. He called me back in an hour and asked me to send some stories and pictures. He wants pictures of people not of mayhem. He will try to get them published and if so we will be reimbursed for each story used.” “You, dear sister, are something else. By the way, mama made me promise that we each would write once a week. You know, I think she is easier with our going than is dad.” “Yes. That’s true and I’ll write as often as I can.” Looking out the window from the third floor of the Caravels Hotel in city center, Saigon, I was entranced to see a kaleidoscope of colors of white, blue and red clothing and black 84 bicycles and mopeds, Nile green mini dresses with plunging necklines on the call girls, the white pantaloons, the traditional wear of the Vietnamese young ladies, a few yellow small cars, brands unknown to me. Mostly there were bicycles and mopeds I had been surprised to see how wide the streets and boulevards were as we drove in from the airport and the orderliness of the cyclists in a city with no electric signal lights. Mickey seemed so relaxed but I was as tight as a drum. I turned to him.” Mickey, are you as calm as you seem?” He blushed and admitted “I’ve been trying to put on a good front, not admitting I was scared when you looked so calm.” I let a high-pitched laugh. “I am totally frightened out of my wits. I was doing fine, I thought. Then, seeing all the guards along the highway in from the airport and the slew of soldiers out our window, made it becomes real. Tomorrow we may be the targets of some Viet Cong sniper. I got to worrying that I have brought you into harms way.” Mickey put his arms around me, pulling my head to his shoulders, his hand smoothing my hair. “Sis, I would be here, no matter, either as a soldier or a photographer. Now tell me about tomorrow.” “We are leaving in his morning for a naval base on the river and canals, accompanying a group of replacement naval personnel. It took some haggling but it seems to have smoother out.” We had a drink at the bar before asking for a table tin the dining room. The receptionist seated us next to the window and adjacent to a table occupied by a light colonel from the Australian Task Force, who smiled warmly at the two of us. “Welcome to Vietnam. You do appear to be recent arrivals.” “Yes we are,” 85 “If I may be so bold, I would be pleased to have you join me for dinner. Dining alone is rather boring.” I looked at Mickey who nodded “. It would be a pleasure.” The colonel stood as we moved toward him and extended his hand. “My friends call me Jake, Jackson Trowne.” I placed my hand in his. “Cathy and Mickey Cheka from New York.” We sat while the waiter hovered to see if we were ready for another drink. Jake signaled for another round. “I presume you are reporters from the states.” Mickey responded. “Cathy is the journalist and I shoot some pictures to go with her stories.” I was dying to ask some questions but decided that propriety outranked inquisitiveness at this point. Since we were early arrivals, the crowd was pretty thin and not too noisy, allowing for easy conversation. We spend some time chatting about backgrounds while we finished our drinks. In the dining room, the waiter took our orders and Jake ordered another drink. I finally got up the courage to ask, “Jake is there any specific advice you have for a couple of greenhorns?” “I’m not one to give advice but I would remind you always to be sure that your back is covered. The Vietcong is made up of very clever and sneaky soldiers who mix so easily with the villagers and other natives, even in the cities. I don’t think you would come to harm here in the city but down country any white face is seen as the enemy.” I was hesitant to ask more questions but seeing the look on my face, Jake said. “Don’t hesitate, Cathy. That’s your job. I’ll try to answer questions that are answerable.” 86 “I thought you might want to escape the war for a while since you appear to be on leave.” “Actually, I am in town for series of conversations with our American counterparts. I needed a few hours separation from the heavy brass.” I took a few bites of the food, which had arrived, before saying. “I’m not sure where to start so why don’t you tell me something that you believe folks at home should know.” “You, Ms. Cheka, are clever and sneaky. Let me have a few bites and time to think about your suggestion.” He picked up his chopsticks and proceeded very deftly to move his rice and shrimp from platter to his lips. “This may not be a story for the homefolks but may be of interest to you. It may prove useful as you try to unravel the complex picture that has emerged here. We Aussies have taken responsibility for Phuoc Tuy province. We believed we were having success using our methods of since we had won a significant battle at Long Tan last August.” “By the way, you may not be able to report most of this because of your censors, but it will give you a brief picture of how things operate here.” “Okay.” “We believe in searching out the Vietcong members who are hiding among the, villagers recruiting help and taking there rice production to feed their soldiers.” Jake paused for a bit to sip of his drink and ordered another. “Our strategist suggested a change from the conventional tactics to concentrating on population control and route security to interrupt the flow of materials across our area. 87 “The American top brass, particularly General Westmoreland started challenging us to return to the ore conventional approach but was being ignored.” I laughed, “I guess there is no way I could get that story past the censors.” He joined in the laughter, his hollow laughter, and then continued. “Well, last month the Vietcong changed tactics and gave us quite a tussle. Up to this point, we had been dominant in every action with the Cong but at what is now known as the battle at AP we got a scare. After three days of intense fighting we could declare a victory but at great cost in loss of more than a hundred young men and equipment.” He did his best to present a mask of calm but I was aware of some deep emotions churning in his eyes. He must have been dealing with thoughts of what it meant for him to order young men into the heat of battle. I shuddered and waited. Jake finished off his drink, ordered another, and then turned to his food, which had turned cold by this time. He played with the food and finally pushed it aside as Mickey and I waited. He resumed his story. “We learned some hard lessons. The VC was stronger than we had imagined. They were no longer a rag tag group of volunteers. Their behavior last month indicated good training and discipline, in fact, better discipline than the South Vietnamese soldiers. The scariest thing that came to mind was that they had a passion that seemed to elude our southern brothers.” “We believe they now have direct support of the North and may have some of the North noncoms leading and supporting their effort.” “We also discovered our weaknesses, which is what brings us together here in the capital for our own meetings and then for joint meetings with the Americans.” 88 I correctly assumed that he had decided to stop even though there were great holes that I would love to have him fill in with details. “Jake, have you even been to the states?” “One brief trip. I was a guest at your War College for six weeks and returned with a short stop for three days in glitzy Los Angeles.” Mickey giggled, “Do I hear an “Ugh” in there?” “I would not be that discourteous but I was under impressed.” He stood and said, “I do believe that I have reached the limit of my ability to imbibe. Do excuse me.” He took my hand, put it to his lips, then said “Blessings on both of you and watch your back.” The two of us took a walk after dinner. Walking the streets in the company of a male presented no risk although the presence of hookers and petty thieves was rampant. The military made up most of the strollers, most being pursued and propositioned by the ladies of the evening. We were seated in the bar when large booms broke into the babble of the patrons. I asked Mickey hopefully “Thunder?” He took my hand. “Nope. Artillery. The concierge told me that at this hour every evening. Seven days a week, the enemy begins their bombardments of supposed positions of our troops north of the city. They are far enough away that no one here pays any attention as you will notice by looking around.” He was right. Everyone else seemed to act as though no bombardment was taking place, but I had that tight feeling in my guts that would not go away. 89 Mickey seemed to fall asleep within minutes of hitting his bed but a myriad of things buzzed though my mind and probably the fear that some bombardment might start up closer to us than the one earlier. I kept wondering what dangers would confront us on the trip to An Thoi area during the following morning. Would some officer refuse us passage in one of the trucks headed there with supplies? My mind finally focused on our dinner conversation. I tried to read between the lines, knowing very well my training from Bill that one had to listen to what was not said. Was Jake implying a warning? What message was he implying about the fact that we were now facing two disciplined and well-armed opponents? I certainly did not like hearing that he believed the VC soldiers displayed a passion for their cause not visible in our southern brothers.” 90 91 Chapter 5. Early in the morning, near a convoy of trucks, we had a visit by a bird colonel who tried to cajole us into aborting our mission, implying that since top brass did not want women journalists in battle zones over night, we might be sent home. Their position was that this was a man’s war and women could be a distraction. I wasn’t having a part of that. Typically, he addressed his comments to Mickey, a male, not to the woman. Mickey deferred to me and I made it clear, rather loudly, that we would take our chances, as had other women before me. He made a point "Young woman, you need to know that no woman had ever accompanied naval operations in the rivers” I reminded him again that I would take my chances. I asked him “Colonel, are you forbidding my taking on this assignment?’ He flushed and stammered “I don’t have that authority but I wish I had.” He finally caved in and did not make any real effort to stop us in the front of an audience of GI’s and sailors We must have walked a quarter mile, past’s truck after truck until we found the dispatcher. He smiled. “Welcome He pointed to a vehicle another twenty yards down the line. “Hop aboard. The driver is expecting you.” The body of the truck was carrying large cartons of food stuff and three soldiers who were part of the protective escort for the trip north. The first part of the trip was uneventful except for the distant rumble of artillery. Traffic was heavy both ways. Our convoy seemed to be escorted by speeding jets flying low periodically and helicopters more often. I was less than sure of our 92 safety when the first jet flew by, expecting to be a victim of an enemy bomber. I learned to take my cue from the soldiers. Since they did not panic, I had to presume I was safe. There were some long stops when the army swept portions of the roadway to make certain that buried mines would not take their toll. I chatted up the young soldiers, all privates, who were my traveling companions and my protectors under leadership of the sergeant. I learned a little of the life stories of the three who were seated near me, John, Kote, Billy Smith and Bob Tole. Suddenly, without warning, the driver hit the brakes hard. “Cathy, out of the truck and roll under until I tell you otherwise.” I was momentarily frozen in place as I saw him reach for his rifle and dash toward the trees. I did as he commanded but Mickey did not join me. I found out later that he followed the squad. It is hard to remember specifics but I do believe I was trembling as I pulled my body into a tight fetal position and waited for the sound of gunfire. Fortunately, after a few s sporadic firings, all was quiet. False Alarm. It was after our first stop, a false alarm when all the soldiers returned from action, that I noticed the high tension in John’s body. I asked him about the alert that had sent them into action. With a tone of false bravado he said, “I guess we scared the VC away.” “Is this your first assignment, John?” “No. I spent two months on patrol, mostly scouring for roadside mines. That’s kind of stress- ful, so I got a long week end pass and reassigned to this detail.” 93 “Can you tell me about those days on patrol?” His body suddenly screwed up, as he turned away no longer wanting to talk with me. In retrospect I now know he had been over stressed during those first two months the daily exposure to the risk of stepping on a mine, took a heavy toll on his psyche. I switched subjects, asking about his life before being drafted. He waxed eloquently talking of his mom and dad and his girl, Jessie. Finally he smiled “That was nice. You are the first person to show any interest in whom I am. Thank you.” I felt pretty good about his comment and would try to remember that in future interviews. Prior to this stop, I could hear the men talking and laughing, but the word was out. We were entering perilous territory. After one longer stop during which the soldiers disappeared, Mike, the sergeant, came by to tell us that a small Viet Cong patrol had been spotted but all was clear now. As he told the story, I could feel the beginning of the tightening but then realized it was short lived. I believe that Mike’s calm was transferring itself to me. My clothes were covered with dirt resulting from the roll under the truck. Mickey teased me and helped me clear of some of the muck. Being uneventful was Sergeant Mike’s way of describing the trip. That does not mean that I was relaxed. Far from it, especially during the first three hours, but I surprised myself by growing accustomed to the tension before the trip was completed. I attribute that to reading Mike’s body language. Mike, the sergeant, was very affable. He climbed into the truck with us and was willing to chat with us and answer questions. 94 His name was Mike Sobczak, the son of Polish immigrants, an eight-year veteran on his third tour to Vietnam. He was a veteran of three fire fights during his first tours but now was relegated, according to him, to somewhat softer duty in charge of a guard detail on convoys of personnel and materials, Each hour on the hour, we stopped for five minutes while his charges exchanged positions with others as guards riding on the roof as lookouts and “riding shotgun” as he said to me. Mickey took a lot of pictures of the soldiers and sailors with their approval, mostly when we had our five-minute breaks and during the safety rests as Mike referred to the longer stops. We arrived at Coastal Division 11, near AnThoi just prior to dusk. Mike asked two of his charges to help us unload while he found a navy chief who took us in tow, heading for the chow hall with the three of us for a very welcome hot meal. We had gobs of salad and fresh apple pie for dessert topped off with strong navy coffee. This kind of feast was not what I had expected. Mike invited me to stay for an extra piece of dessert after the others cleared out. He asked, “How do you think you survived your first day, Cathy?” “I have mixed feelings. Starting out I felt braver than I do now. I was scared as hell several times during the trip.” “I noticed that. You were white as a sheet when I returned from pursuing the small group of Viet Cong.” “I was really frightened, mostly because of what was going through my head. My imagination was running wild me, I guess, since everything is so new and strange to me. As I reflect back now, I am sure that I was more afraid of pain than I was of death. Strange, isn’t it?” 95 “At one point, when you were gone for what seemed an eternity, I was thinking that I had lost the first friend I had made in this strange land.” I could feel the tears forming behind my eyelids as I shared my feelings with Mike. He reached across the table to take my hand in his until he sensed that I had myself under control again. “You do know that you may be even closer to the enemy in the days ahead since you hoping to make at least one patrol run on the Swift boat.” “Yes, I know, but somehow I now feel I can do this and remain calm even if scared under fire.” “What else are you planning?” “Mostly character studies, I hope. I want to write some of what I experience with the military but I’m hoping to have my readers understand the men who are putting their lives on the line and what it may be costing them.” “Sounds like you want to be the Ernie Pyle of the Vietnam War.” “I haven’t thought of trying to emulate Ernie, but I am interested in what is happening to the individuals on the firing line. If I have the privilege, I hope to write something of the Vietnamese families caught in the cross file.” “I have a feeling that you will accomplish all you hope for Cathy. I must tell you that I thought you and your brother showed more composure than any of the new recruits in that truck.” “Thank you, Mike. I pray you’re right” “Come now. I want to introduce you to two of the boat skippers, both of whom I hope will be willing to take you on patrol.” 96 We found Mickey and took off for the officers’ wardroom. There must have been a dozen young officers, Ensigns and Lieutenant Jg’s, either playing cards or shooting pool. Mike shouted “Lady Aboard.” and took us over to one of the pool tables. The room went dead still, all eyes focused on me. “Guys, meet Cathy and Mickey Cheka, journalist and photographer, who will be with you for a few days. We’ve just arrived by convoy from Saison.” A chorus of “Welcome, Howdy, Nice to have you,” and some I couldn’t understand. Mike then introduced us to Jonathan Oliver and Jason Black who, in turn, introduced us to John Paulsen and Jake Feingold. The four of them hung up their pool cues and found us a table. Mike started to excuse himself but Jason said. “What’s your poison, Mike? This particular piece of officer country is open to all with no exceptions.” Beers all around except for Jonathan, who had an early patrol. They pressed the two of us about our intentions and hopes. Thirty minutes into the conversation Jason said “I think we have a good chance to make your hopes come to fruition. I’ll stroll over to the senior officers’ ward room to see our squadron commander, Jimmy Falk, about arrangements for your joining us on patrols over the next few days.” “Ask for as many as four, if possible” said Jonathan Mickey popped up with “Do you think your crews would like to have some pictures, posed or candid to send home to their families or girl friends?” “Are you kidding they’ll stand in line all day.” Mick figured it would be our way of repaying them while hoping to find some character studies for his collection. 97 Jason invited the others present in the room to come over and meet us, telling them about our hopes and the individual picture opportunities. Mike stood up “Time to hit the sack. I’m off early for the return to headquarters.” He turned to me. “Great getting to know you, Cathy. Jake says he will take care of private sleeping quarters for you and a bunk for Mickey. He will safeguard Mickey’s equipment.” “Thank you, Mike. Meeting you has been like a miracle.” I gave him a warm hug and a warm kiss on the cheek and Mickey came over to shake his hand and offer his own thanks. Jake said to us “We close early since one third to one half of us will be on patrol tomorrow. Mickey, your stuff is well protected here in a private room at the rear where Cathy can drop her sleeping bag for the night. We have a guard at both entrances along with our normal placement of guards to patrol all the camp areas. Would you like another beer before we close down the bar?” We both nodded a negative and took our seats. Jason came strolling in with a big grin “Jimmy is all for it although I heard a couple of his buddies trying to tell him that the big brass will not be pleased. .He said there wasn’t any punishment he had to worry about, being a reserve and that he was already punished since he was here in Nam. He is great.” I asked “You mean we can go on patrols?” “Yep. Up to four of them, but Jimmy decides which patrols, probably trying to guess which might be a little less risky.” John, who hadn’t spoken a word, said “Who can guess what the VC will or will not have planned for us.” Fifteen minutes later, the gang said goodnight to me after one of the guys had gone to the bunk rooms and brought a couple of blankets to put under my sleeping bag and a couple of sheets. I 98 certainly never expected such luxury on my first night in the war zone. I headed out to the latrine or in navy language, the outdoor head, to empty my bladder before retiring. Despite the promise that the area was safe, I dashed both ways, praying that some Vietcong soldier was not looking for target practice. With lights out I removed all my clothing slipping between the sheets and hoping for at least some air from the fans, which continued to rotate during the night. The night was punctuated with sounds of gunfire and the booming of artillery off in the distance. Before dawn I heard the movement of my new friends, some of who were prepping for the dawn patrols of the rivers. There was no attempt to be quiet. I heard a mixture of voices, “Where’s the damn box of fifties? Who took my coffee mug? Do you have our lunch boxes, Smitty? The hell with it.” There was no way I was going to sleep; so I dressed and joined the crews, running into Mickey. “Unable to sleep?” I asked. “Yeah, but I’m also headed out on a patrol.” “Great. Take a few notes for me along with your photos. I hope to be on a later trip.” “Good morning, Cathy.” I turned o find Jason walking toward us with two cups of hot coffee¸ one for me. “Thanks, Jason.” “My pleasure. You’re up early. Couldn’t sleep?” “Right. Not used to artillery and ground fire erupting in the middle of my dreams.” “Give it a couple of nights and you’ll sleep through everything.” “I’ll take your word for it.” 99 Fifteen minutes later the engines were roaring but the voices were mute as the two Swift boars pulled away from the pier. Six hours later I was aboard PCF 110, outfitted to look like a crewmember. Our skipper was Jonathan Oliver, commanding a crew of five who said to me “Feel free to roam and ask questions until I let you know to the contrary.” He continued “This should be a relatively smooth patrol. Most action happens during the early and late patrols. That is not to say that there is no risk. The enemy does not nap during the daylight hours but does find it harder to hide, even in the heavy bush.” I chose to chat with Felix the forward lookout during the first and safest part of the trip. “Felix, do you feel comfortable enough to tell me what runs through your mind when we are about to encounter the enemy?” “That’s too personal, Miss.” “Call, me Cathy, please. I know but I’m trying to write about the human side of the war. I want to write a full picture and will share my source with no one unless you want to be identified.” “All right but I do not want anyone to know. First, answer a question for me. Are you scared?” “Yes, I am.” “If you multiply that by fifty then you will begin to understand how scared I am. In order to get past that I try not to think about the enemy by letting my minds see my Katie as we kissed goodbye at the railroad station thirteen months and three days ago. When Mr. Oliver orders alert I take my binoculars and focus on the riverbanks ahead hoping to see the face of the enemy, 100 a difficult job. From that point forward there is no time for fear or for day dreaming” “What specifically are you looking for?” “A glint of metal on shore, the possibility of armed VC’s among the locals who are fishing in the river. Others are focused on the water ahead looking for boats, sampans or junks that may be carrying supplies and ammo for the enemy.” “Thanks, Felix. I may have some other questions when I learn what the important questions I should be asking. ” Nicky, another member the crew, started passing out coffee mugs, saying to me “Last coffee before alert schedule.” When he picked up the mugs about ten minutes later I asked him if we had time and if he were willing to chat. He thought that would be okay for another ten minutes. “Nicky, you seem a little older than all the others. Would you care to tell me about yourself?” “I don’t mind but I thought you were more interested in the action here.” “That’s important but I am hoping to have my readers informed about the persons who are fighting and how they see this war.” “Okay and you can quote me if you find anything interesting. I am Nicholas Kochoff, born to Ukrainian immigrants. I am married to Katrina and father to young Nicky. I am in my eleventh year, regular navy, and leading petty officer in the crew, junior only to the skipper.” ‘Have you ever been injured as a result of your navy duties?” Twice, although the doctors qualify them as minor, I do have two purple hearts. One more and I can be transferred out of 101 this hell hole.” Before he could add anything the skipper yelled, “Pass the word. Alert.” The tension rose a hundred percent in that moment and was palpable. It seemed to me that every back was just a bit stiffer and I was aware that my body had tightened significantly. Nicky checked me over to be sure I was properly uniformed for the combat zone and took me to my seat where I had just enough vision to see what would be happening with at least some modicum of protection. He said “If, by any chance, you catch sight of a flash or even a glint of sunlight reflecting off any surface, yell my name and point.” He was implying the presence of a sniper. I could feel every muscle in my body continue to tighten up and I remembered Felix’s word about being frightened. Never the less, I was definitely determined not to panic. We suddenly heeled over as we turned into a branch of the river and moved out to the center of the stream. The scene before me could have been a lazy summer day with a myriad of fishing poles flanked by women doing their laundry. Children were running in an out of the water, yelling and playing a game similar to our game called tag. Most of them waved a welcome greeting, at least it seemed that way to me. Only Nicky waved back, everyone else at full alert. The air continued to be thick with tension, having its full effect on me. Nicky turned, handed me a set of binoculars. ‘If you see anything out of the ordinary, call my name and point.” “What am I looking for?” “Something that seems out of place.” I was torn between my desire to be writing notes, particularly about my feelings and thoughts, and the need to be of any help to the crew. 102 I gasped and started to call Nicky but Felix shouted “Two sampans dead ahead turning to shore.” I stood up for a better view. The skipper signaled for the occupants to halt but they put their oars to work along with dropping their sail. The skipper ordered, “Open fire.” The chatter of the fifty caliber machine guns and the firing of the eighty-one millimeter mortars seemed deafening to me. The sailors abandoned ship, jumping into the river and swimming for shore. Both sampans were destroyed, one blown to bits as the cargo of ammo exploded. It was the fireworks display in Central Park, fifty times bigger and louder and hell of a lot more serious. The personnel successfully evaded us by disappearing into the jungle. As we approached the flotsam, Nicky and Felix leaning over the side, we came under attack from rifle fire emanating out of the foliage to our starboard. The only evidence was the smoke puffs from the shooting area, which became the target of our fifty caliber machine guns, as they swiveled and began their chatter. We had no way of knowing if any enemy were struck but Nicky was holding his right leg and I could see blood oozing through his pant leg. Jonathan yelled for me to hunker down behind the bulkhead. In all the excitement I had forgotten to watch out for my safety. The skipper ordered full speed ahead to get us out of range and avoid further damage. I was jerked backwards as the boat thrust forward. A moment later, Felix helped Nicky back into the cabin and applied a tourniquet while I reached into the first aid kit and found some gauze pads to press over the bleeding wound. I heard Jonathan asking Felix “How bad is it?” “Looks like flesh only. I don’t see any bone ends protruding nor blood gushing from an artery.” Nicky was gritting his teeth and trying not to let the tears roll out. Felix had me remove the pad so he could apply some sort of powder direct to the 103 wound. I found more pads and a roll of gauze and tape. Ten minutes later Nicky was almost zonked out from a near overdose of painkiller that Felix had given him. Jonathan who had come down to the cabin from the bridge asked “How are you doing, Cathy?” “Right now I’m shaking like a leaf, all of which started after we had Nicky bandaged and sedated. I can’t seem to hold onto anything at the moment.” “Absolutely classic effects of a first engagement. Take this relaxing pill if you want.” “I think I will be okay in a few minutes. Besides you can use another lookout with Nicky out of commission.” “I can’t ask a civilian to do that.” “I didn’t hear you ask me anything, why don’t you return to your post and let me rest here as your guest, with my binoculars at hand.” He grinned and placed his large hand on my shoulder and went up to his post. The medic at the base was worried about a possible infection and decided to ask the supply helicopter pilot to take Nicky with him on the return to Saigon in the morning. After chow with my new friends in the officers’ mess, I came to sit with Nicky after he was less sedated. “Cathy, it is nice of you to come for a visit with a sick friend.” He laughed. “Pull up a seat.” “How bad is it, Nicky?” “Just right. Not too damaging but enough to get me reassigned away from this hell hole.” I hate this damned activity. We put ourselves in harm’s way, destroy some wooden boats, and kill a few VC’s. The enemy is clever and move most of their 104 supplies and ammo in between our patrols. The whole thing stinks, but please don’t quote me personally on that last statement.” “Does that mean you hope for a discharge?” Hell no. I want this to be my career, .to serve my country, not like those kids back home. It would be nice if we could cash it in right now before we waste so many more lives.” Felix came in. My conversation with Nicky was over and I stood to leave. “Please stay Cathy. I will be only a few minutes and would like to talk with you. He turned to Nicky. “Lucky bastard. You got the third one instead of me. Hope you get assigned stateside. It’s been great serving with you buddy.” I could hardly swallow with the lump in my throat as I watched two grown men weep without shame at their parting and ending up in each other’s arms “Give my love to Katrina and my godson, little Nicky. I hope to see you in the spring.” He turned, walked out of the room, expecting me to follow. We walked to the small enlisted men’s club where he sprung for a couple of cokes. “Cathy, we shared one patrol together and it is unlikely that we shall see each other again. You will have patrols with other crews and then probably be on your way to some other hole in this morass. I think the public needs to know more about what is happening to the people here, the locals and those of us serving in the military.” “One of my other buddies recently had a letter from his girl friend whose father was telling her that it was unpatriotic to be writing to servicemen who were serving here. There seems to be such a terrible bias back home against all of us here.” “You may be doing us a great service with stories about the personal side of life in Nam. If you are open to one man’s 105 opinion, I suggest you may get a balanced view if you continue talking with enlisted men as well as the officers. If you can find time, try to interview some of the Vietnamese women . In the village nearby are several eloquent mamas sans who speak passable English and fluent French. The Nguyen sisters who hold opposing political views would be happy to talk with you, if you choose. You may use my name.” “Thank you, Felix. Do you think you can introduce me? It would be better than just using your name.” “If we can find the time, I’d be happy to do it.” As I headed to the officers’ area, Jake Paulsen coming up behind me asked, “May I walk with you, Cathy?” Laughing I said. “I’d be pleased for an escort.” When we arrived, he found a free table and, after asking, got me a coke and some pretzels. “I have the pleasure of being your host if you are up to a night patrol beginning at 0200 tomorrow morning. We’ll be back by 0700.” “Great, if I can log a little sack time until departure.” “If you think you can sleep through the usual night noises, I suggest you might start early. The noise level is much lower before midnight. We will be a two-boat patrol, each on either side of the river, fairly close to the riverbanks. Ours will be succeeding two other boats arriving after the used the same patrol route from 2000 to 0200.” “Where do I sack out? We can’t chase the guys out from here.” “Jimmy, our skipper is taking off for two days and we have moved your stuff to his room in the Senior Officers’ quarters.” 106 “Wow, one day of service and I get promoted.” We had a good laugh as we started to my temporary pad. The outward-bound leg was uneventful but tension was as palpable as that on my first tour. Everyone was alert even before we reached what was known as the alert zone. It was a two-boat patrol and we riding the starboard bank. At the turn around point we checked out two sampans on the beach and what appeared to be four families staring at us as we approached. Jake decided they were friendliest and signaled for the start of the homeward leg. Approximately a half hour from home- base, the air was split with a booming sound and my eyes squeezed shut from the flash of the detonating mine that destroyed our sister patrol boat. The skipper immediately headed across the stream toward the scene of the explosion. Our crew turned on two powerful searchlights looking for any lurking enemies while putting a constant heavy stream of fifty caliber shells into the bush. The skipper was concerned that the VC might be preparing to target us as we moved in for a possible rescue. No one was to be seen. As we approached I could hear the screams of pains from some and moans from others in the water. A very large knot formed in my belly and I found it difficult to swallow. I felt faint but challenged myself to keep my composure. As we neared the disabled boat, the first thing I saw was Brother Mickey, bobbing in his Mae West and shooting film of the scene. I had no idea he was aboard. I wanted to yell, “Are you injured?” but quickly connected to the fact that he was busy working. My mind began playing with the guilt of bring my little brother into this pit, called Vietnam. Mama and Daddy would 107 never forgive me if something happened to Mickey. Why was he on another night patrol?” Within minutes my mind was back to the present. We were picking up the entire crew, one dead, three seriously injured and three relatively unscathed. It took less than twenty minutes from the moment of the explosion to get everyone aboard. As I settled down, I again became upset and very emotional, happy that Mickey was alive and well, but dismayed that he was filming instead of trying to help the wounded. He told me later. “Sis, I started to help but the skipper said he and some of the others would handle things until our boat arrives and he wanted picture of our boat, the whole scene including the scattered parts of the boat.” Back at the base, each of us went through the debriefing. Afterwards, I spent time with two of the less seriously injured, but had no access to the three who suffered major injuries. They were sedated in preparation for a copter ride to the hospital in Saigon. Sleep was slow coming as I tried to deal with my feelings but I managed to get a couple of hours in the sack before Felix knocked at the door. “Cathy, I have the day off and can take you to the village.” Sleepily, I answered. “How about an hour from now?” “The bus leaves in forty-five minutes.” The lack of sleep was worthwhile. I spent four hours with Nguyen sisters and now felt I had something unique to write home about. That evening I spent hours putting together a story of two sisters who viewed the war from directly opposite viewpoints. Marie, widow of a Viet Cong lieutenant was an adamant believer in the tenets of an independent South Vietnam, free of imperialist rule of the United States, which, in her opinion, had simply taken 108 over the role of the French. “I hate this war. Tell your government to leave and let us rule our own lives.” “I asked, “Won’t you just become puppets of the North?” “Very unlikely. The North will be happy to have a southern neighbor, living under principles similar to their own.” At that point her sister Helene could not hold back. She cut in with “My loving and idealistic sister is delusional. If the United States pulls out, Mr. Ho Chi Mihn will move in with his army and we will live as austerely as the northerners do now. I don’t want to live that way.” I was amazed as the discussion went on for several hours with focus on the issues while neither seemed to attack the personage of the other. It just did not get personal at any point. Helene passionately repeated her feelings. “I want a democratic free country. The communists in the north will overpower us and absorb us, something that Marie does not understand..:” I was so impressed with their use of the English language that I had to ask, “Marie, I notice that both of you speak English beautifully and grammatically correct. I’m surprised to find such well spoken persons in this rural village.” “Thank you, Cathy. This is our family home but both of us lived in Saigon for years with our mother’s brother, a bachelor, who saw to our education, including years at the University where we learned French and American English.” Helene interjected “We lost our husbands within a month of each other and decided that our mother needed us. This area is fairly safe.” Marie picked up the thread. “There are no young men, all having been drafted. A few of the women have joined up as warriors with the VC, believing in that cause as I do.” 109 I asked “Do you have enough food. I noticed that the children seem to be quite slim and a bit undernourished.” Marie said. “We have enough to meet our needs.” Helene said. Rather wryly “The VC, who takes most of our crop, leaves us with more than they leave with other villages.” I pondered her statement and she went on “Since Marie is known for her stout defense of the Viet Cong, we do receive some side benefits.” Marie said with a smile. “yes and sister Helene occasionally takes some over to the next village which retains quite a bit less since they have strong anti-Viet Cong feelings.” I asked “Is that a common practice, the taking of your crops when soldiers come through?” Marie answered with a bit of bitterness. “Only with the Viet Cong. The others seem to have adequate rations and fewer needs to request from the villagers.” I also wrote up the story of the night scene in which we lost that swift boat and one petty officer, a husband and a father of two little preschool daughters. I sent along some photos of Mickey’s taken at the scene of the explosion and a picture of the Nguyen women. During the hours of working I was in complete control of my emotions but the moment I finished, my mind flipped back to the scene of the blow up and I began to cry for the wife and children of the lost sailor. It was important during the work hours to be the professional observing journalist but in the dark and privacy of the night, I yielded to the feminine side of my being. 110 Ten days later I was to receive clippings of both stories that had been published under my byline in five regional papers and the sisters’ story published in the Times. My old boss sent me the clippings and suggested that similar stories focused on locals or unique contributions by our military men would get the attention of the right folks at the Times. He added a special comment “Mickey truly captured the pain and pathos in both women. Be sure to send pics with all submissions” While Mickey completed his photos of the officers and enlisted men, as he had promised, and took to more patrol rides, I decided to spend time talking with my new friends, officers and enlisted, or visiting in the village. Felix arranged with his friends to see to my transport. I hit the jackpot with an interview set up by and interpreted by Helene. She was Mrs. Vu, who was forty-nine years old but looked sixty, a true picture of sadness. She sat in her wooden rocking chair under a tree, her demeaned expressionless, as she told me, of her grief losing three sons during the past year. Her tone was absolutely flat as she said “One was a VC private, my oldest. The other two were privates in the South Vietnam army. When we received word of their deaths, my youngest left home without saying a word. I have had not heard a word from him except that he is serving with the VC.” Her responses to my questions were all in monotone, devoid of expression, her emotion showing through the tears that rolled down her cheeks. I was so choked up that I had long pauses between the few questions I wanted to ask. I found myself unable to shake a mental picture of mama receiving word of either or both of us being missing in action. 111 I sent Mickey over later that day to use the magic of his camera to help me tell the story. The story was well received by my sponsors and picked up by other newspapers who subscribed to the Times’ services. Their acknowledgements came a few days before we were to leave An Thoi. Along with demands from my supporters, I received an invitation to do a longer piece for Vanity Fair Magazine featuring local women as my subject. That request would have to wait. Jason invited me to join the boat captains for chow during which he told me that if I were planning on leaving, this week he could get us a copter ride to Saigon the following morning. “Your old friend, Mike, says there is room. Otherwise it will mean a truck convoy.” “I need to see if Mickey has taken all the pictures of your crews as he promised. If so, I am ready to go. I walked over to a table where my brother was seated “Absolutely and I can be ready in tem minutes.” “We’ll leave in the morning. Come over and shoot some pics of the gang with me in the middle and I’ll shoot some that include you.” 112 113 Chapter 6. Just before dawn, the Huey blades were rotating as Mickey and I hurried to load our gear and jump aboard. We were really not settled when we felt lift off. Our friend, Mike, grinned when I fell backwards into his lap. I laughed and said, “Guess we’re in a hurry.” “Yep. I have another caravan to escort later today, heading for a remote area in the central highlands. Where are you headed?” “We hope to be where we can be close enough to understand the reality of what is happening to people, our men as well as the locals.” “Why not join us? A battle in the hills has been raging for weeks. I understand that the enemy is made up of regulars from NV not the VC. “There have been heavy losses of both men and material which is why my outfit is on tap.” “Can we find some space in the convoy?” He laughed. “We’ll find room.” Eight hours later we were departing Saigon and headed for the combat zone. Just before departure, I saw Mike’s entire oversized platoon of ARVN standing at ease with their carbines in hand and grenades hanging from their belts, while they listened to some instructions from Mike on behalf of his lieutenant. From the sheer numbers, I guessed that it was a large convoy with an important cargo. Mickey and I found a seat with the driver of a large supply truck, a lot more conformable than our previous ride. The driver said” I’m Joe.Your first trip to a combat zone. ?” 114 “Sort of. We spent a week with a naval swift boat unit and saw some action with the VC’s. I’m Cathy and this is my brother, Mickey. He’s the photographer.” “I’m glad you had some experience but gird your loins. What you see here will be ten times as bad as anything you may have experienced with the navy.” “Do you have some knowledge of what we are going to see?” “This is my third trip in three weeks. Although home base is not involved, the sight of damaged material along the road and the injured awaiting transportation and the number of body bags is helluva a sight.” Mickey asked “When we make our next stop, would you mind letting me shoot of picture of you next to the truck?” “No problem, but I would like to have a copy to send home to my wife.” “How do you happen to be driving a truck?” He gave a whop and laughed. “I’m lucky, I guess. After you’ve been nicked a few times you get reassigned to less hazardous duties, so I travel to and from hot zones now.” Before the trip ended I had a great profile for submission. He was a twelve-year veteran, with a wife and two sons, both in elementary school. He had not seen his family for the better part of three years, but heard from all three individually regularly. “I love the letters from my sons, neither of whom can wait until they are old enough to enlist. Both get into fights with kids who pick up anti war ideas from their folks and spout off on the school playground.” I asked, “How do feel about being here and taking a couple of direct hits?” 115 “Ma’am, I do what I am told. This is my life. I am not sure what we are accomplishing here in the jungles, but I am here to serve my country. It sure would be nice to hear some support from others back home besides my family and marine friends. It gets a little lonely when I sit in a foxhole waiting for the next salvo from some unknown direction. The enemy is hard to see, always hidden in the brush or high in a tree. I call them ghosts of the jungle.” I asked “Would you mind if I quoted you in an article that may get published in the New York area?” “I’d be honored.” Just then, we heard some weapons firing. “Outside and scoot under the truck. Do it now.” He reached behind the seat, picked up his carbine and vanished from our sight. We lay under the truck for about a half hour. Periods of silence would then be punctuated with long periods of rifle fire being exchanged. I kept waiting for the sound of mortars or rockets that might put us in greater peril and couldn’t help wondering if our truck or the closes ones might be carrying ammo. “How are you doing, Mickey?” “I’m fine, but I would like to get some pics of the action.” “Bad idea.” “I know. Seeing the enemy would be impossible anyhow, I guess, based on Joe’s comments” “Are you frightened, Mickey?” He grinned “A little, but not like I thought I might be. Somehow, the incident on the swift boat made me think about my actions and that while risky, there is much I can do to keep myself safe. Does that make any sense?” “Yes. I in fact, it does. Like you, I am not as scared as I thought I would be.” “Just take care, big sister.” 116 “You, too. Remember to act like Mike told us. Do your job but in such a way that you are fee to continue doing it, instead of finding yourself on a medical gurney.” Upon his return, Joe said. “That was a VC patrol of about a dozen. Six enemy killed, no friendliest injured or killed. I stopped by the chuck wagon and brought some chow. The convoy master suggested a twenty-minute time for food and the chance to take care of other bodily needs. The troops assure me that the brush is private and safe.” After a trip to the bushes, I sat on the ground and opened the new C-ration, officially the MCI-ration, this was my first and Joe told us that it was a big improvement over the old C or K rations used in WWII. I suddenly realized I was having a meal with a new friend and my hands were not shaking. Precisely twenty minutes later we were rolling. I spent much of the time composing two stories to be submitted, one was my description of the enemy patrol along with my reactions, the other was a profile of Sergeant Joe Oliverio, survivor of three fire fights, who shared many of his personal experiences and feelings that he had experienced in the middle of those fire fights. The colonel was unhappy to see me while he thought Mickey’s presence would be a great help to his own photographer. “Miss. I recommend you climb on that returning truck in the morning. This is no place for a lady and you will be a distraction to my men.” “I sincerely disagree with you, Colonel Foster. I plan to stay unless you have the authority and order me to leave.” 117 “Although I-Corps has taken a strong stand, I can’t do that, Miss, but I strongly recommend it.” “Thank you, but I plan to stay for a while. Would it be possible to talk with your information officer for an official briefing?” He seemed to be fuming silently but unhappily he grunted a name that I understood to Lieutenant Kelly whom I found ten minute later having a cup of coffee in the mess tent. I was to find out later that in the meantime Mickey had hitched a ride on an ammo re-supply truck headed for one of the forward positions. I walked up to a handsome, blond, curly -headed officer about my age. “Hi. I’m Cathy Cheka, from the New York Times.” I received a warm wide smile accompanied by crinkly eyes “Delighted to have you. I am happy that the old man did not scare you off. How about a cup of our mud, that we call coffee?” “I’d be pleased.” He stepped away for a minute and returned, “We have sweetener but no lightener.” “Black is fine.” When he returned, we took seats on some wooden crates in the shade of a large tank that was waiting for a mechanic to start repairs. “I can assure you, Cathy, that the men and we less brassy ones are delighted to have you. I think the men particularly will be pleased because your presence makes our brass unhappy. It’s one of life’s little pleasures. Now how can I help?” “Give me everything you are free to tell me about this engagement to date. Where are we and what’s happened?” “Finish your coffee while I get my notes and gather my thoughts.” Five minutes later he started in. 118 “A few weeks ago, a group of five FO’s that is Forward Observers were ambushed; four of the five were killed near Hill 861. Two companies of marines were advanced and underwent heavy fire. Constant rocket barrages onto the copter landing zone were restricting evacuation of the injured. Fog prevented air support. It was brutal. We soon found out that we were facing regular North Vietnamese soldiers, not VC’s. They were well trained, disciplined and heavily armed. Well fortified and disciplined, the enemy would wait until our men were close in and let go with barrages of rifle fire and 82mm mortar fire Later, when we got air support, the bombs were limited to 500 pounders so that shrapnel would not fly far enough to injure our men. The heavy fortifications in which the NVA regulars were entrenched held up very well against the light bombs. It was a brilliant strategy but we overcame them several days ago and took that hill. By the way, the reference to a hill is in fact several hills and saddles.” “How about casualties?” “Very heavy, especially since marines are determined not to leave their buddies behind, alive or dead.” “What’s going on now? You said we had taken hill 861.” “Vrroon, Vrroom” The relative silence in the air was being interrupted with the sound of artillery shells emanating from a location just east of our base. “Vrroom:Vrrooom. Vrroom.” My eyes were searching for somewhere to hide, but Kelly put his hand on my arm. “It’s our marines moving into the next phase of our attack. We’re safe here.” 119 “Yes. We are now attacking Hill 881, but I can’t comment on current activities for reasons of secrecy as you can assume, but you can make your own deductions from what you hear.” “I haven’t come this far to get a history lesson only, although it was valuable and I thank you.” “Well, I am not in position to tell you what to do and I certainly will not counter the old man’s orders that say I can not provide transportation for you. Off the record I hear there are marine supply drivers and Huey pilots who have been known to flaunt some orders.” “Thank you, Lieutenant.” “How about you call me ‘Irish’ and I call you Cathy?” I smiled. “All right, Irish. Now, where do I bum some food? I’m starved,” “The mess tent is open 24/7. Men shuttle between the front and here all day and night. I’ll introduce you to some guys who have spent days on the front and may be willing to talk. Of course, some may give you a complete cold shoulder.” We walked over to the large tent that was serving as the mess hall. About two dozen marines were seated in pairs or groups of three with a few singles. We moved toward attired looking marine, seated by him, nursing a cup of coffee. “Frank, this is Cathy Cheka, journalist with the New York Times. Cathy, this is Frank Avila. We happen to come from the same hometown, Salinas, California. Frank is the looey who is back for twenty-four hours, having a bit of shrapnel removed about a half hour ago.” “Pleased to meet you, Cathy. I just met a new photographer up front. Working with you?” 120 “Yes. He’s my brother. We work as a team, his pics, and my prose.” “He is something else. You should be proud of him. He got his pics but was a big help with three of the brothers who got hit His help left the rest of us to do our job while he worked with the corpsman taking care of the wounded.” I went pale as my mind twirled with pictures of Mickey at risk. Frank saw my reaction and quickly said. “He was never in real danger, Cathy. We shielded him and kept up a barrage of fire until the injured were out of sight.” The image in my mind did nothing to ease my feelings. I took a long drink of my coffee and worked at settling my nerves. It took a while until I felt strong enough to walk to the chow line for my dinner. Nothing appealed to me but I did choose some soup and a salad and downed most of that over a protracted dinner hour. I shelved my plans to interview Frank, unable to think of anything but Mickey. That was stupid. I should have keep t busy with interviews instead of fretting and worrying. Each minute felt like an hour until Mickey showed up. He showed up a couple hours later, all excited about the pictures and thrilled with the chance to help the injured marines. “I stayed with them outside until transport was arranged to bring them back to camp. I have a fistful of notes for you about who they are; how they came to be marines and other places they have served. I hope they are helpful.” I had been so frightened for him and wanted to yell at him, but his enthusiasm was infectious suddenly realized that my little brother was now a man and would lead his life according to his own principles or beliefs. I bit my tongue and gave him a long and hug, .but the butterflies in my belly kept fluttering. 121 It was a long night. I can’t remember how long it took me to get to sleep with the constant interruption of distant short barrages of rifle fire, supplemented by mortars and occasionally the “Vroom” of the 155’s. I guess I finally accepted that as a norm and fell sound asleep shortly before dawn. Shortly after an early breakfast, Mickey took me over to the medical chopper pad. I spent time interviewing two marines who were waiting transport to the hospital. Suddenly Mickey was calling me. “We have a chopper ride to the front. Jim is headed empty to pick up some injured.” My first view of a combat zone consisted of three bleeding marines being attended by a corpsman whose left arm was oozing blood. While Mickey and the pilot, Jim, were loading the injured onto the Huey, I talked Phil, the corpsman, into letting me bandage his left arm. “It’s just a scratch, Cathy.” “It’s more than a scratch.” “Believe me. It’s minor. We just loaded two marines on the copter, one of whom will probably need to have a replacement for his right arm and the other who may have headaches the rest of his life.” His words hit me like a ton of bricks. Up to now, I had not seen head wounds or anyone with a bloody stump instead of an arm. The image nearly made me gag but I got a hold of myself and changed the subject. “How do you know my name?” “Yesterday, Mickey talked a lot about you and how you two have been a team ever since high school days. He is so proud of you.” I thanked him and pondered his words. It was special to hear from someone else the depth of my brother’s feelings for me. 122 Phil was pointing out a couple of spots where I might see some of the action and where I could be hidden from the view of the enemy soldiers. He was interrupted with a call for help some place forward of our position. When he left, I realized that we had been shouting over the noise of gunfire. I scouted around for a spot where I could get a view of some of the action. I was able to haul myself into the cab of a deserted and mangled large abandoned truck The scene before me seemed unreal, more like a movie. Our marines spaced apart by a few yards crawling up a hillside, looking like large ants with a specific goal in mind. I was aware that there was little shrubbery or trees to offer any temporary protection. Exposed as they were, they moved with determination toward the next bunker, then hurling grenades into the bunker openings. Once past that bunker, the next target was another bunker, but over the next half hour I saw no movement. I had to guess they either killed or were killed. The eventual goal, the top of the hill, must have seemed to them to be an eternity away. . From points higher up the hill, constant flashes of gun fire were pointed at the marines I saw two of our marines, stop and fire a mortar toward what must have been a bunker and soon noticed the flash and sound of other mortars. I tried to figure out what was happening. I had expected more activity on the ground. There was more air activity with the jets zooming overhead and dropping their payloads on what were probably the bunkers of the enemy. I was amazed to see the amount of fire power directed at the medical choppers. I thought “God, those fliers are brave beyond the ken of my understanding.” My heart sank as I saw one take a direct hit, apparently from a rocket. 123 My imagination must have stupefied me. I was visualizing the panic inside the tumbling copter and praying for the crew and the passengers being brought out. I suddenly became aware that Phil and four marines were carrying two injured buddies back to our temporary base. I hustled down to help Phil. The four marines headed back to their duties. Phil gave me instructions on how to wash the wounds, apply the powder or ointment while he performed the more serious work and applied the bandages. One of the patients was a major who was leading his men in the ferocious fighting. Since he was the lesser injured, I asked him if he felt like chatting with me. He looked at me and grinned. “You’re a young woman, not much older than my daughter. What are you, oh I see. You’re a journalist.” I laughed. “Yes, for some regional papers and part time for the New York Times.” “Sure. The unit with which I have been fighting is coming off the line for a brief respite. If you can find me some hot coffee, I’d be delighted to talk.” Ten minutes later, with his back against a tree and a coffee in one hand he said, “My name is not to be used but you can call me Zip. You have to hold off filing your story until we give you the go ahead. I think you will understand as my information unfolds.” “It looks like this hill 881 has about ten times the number of enemy bunkers and fox holes as hill 861. Our aircraft are still limited to five hundred pound bombs because heavier bombs will blow shrapnel over our position, thus injuring our men. That means the air support is leaving us more vulnerable since the light bombs are less effective.” 124 “Our losses are so heavy that I have recommended to my superiors that we ask for one thousand pound bombs. That is unusual in such close combat situations but something has to be done. The cost from losing our marines is too high” “What will be done to protect our men?” “Under cover of dark, our troops will pull back so as to be out of range of the shrapnel and reclaim their positions as the bomb loads are reduced to five hundreds again.” “In the meantime, our daylight activity is rather limited most men are hunkered down in our own bunkers while the air activity continues.” I hadn’t been aware that his radioman was standing nearby. “Sir, incoming for you.” A minute later he said, “The bigger bombs are being loaded.” Zip shouted “Corpsman, I need to get back to the line.” “Let me double check the wound and re-bandage, sir.” He was gone and more wounded were being brought in. I heard the chop chop of the Huey and saw Jim landing, with three wounded marines from some other station and ready to pick up our more serious wounded. Early the next morning and all day l I could hear the larger bombs exploding and I hardly slept during the bombing. Very late that afternoon I heard the change of sounds announced the decrease to five hundred pounders instead of the larger bombs. Even though I could not see, I visualized our marines crawling or running up the hill and shooting. I cringed at the thought of those who would not escape the fire from the enemies who survived the bombing. I could not shake that image of ants climbing rapidly up an ant hill. 125 Phil would call for me when he needed help, thus giving me a chance to earn my keep and opportunities to interview the guys I now called my marines. At 1900 that evening Mickey and I were in the mess tent back at the base, dead tired and ready for the sack getting to sleep was another matter. My mind was wrestling with the fact that those marines who looked like ants on a hillside were likely to be on a stretcher, bleeding or even worse by the time I awoke in the morning. At 0630 the next morning we hopped in with Jim and headed out where I joined Phil who was tending to the medical needs of four marines. The next eight hours were a repeat of the day before except that the bombs were dropping more rapidly and the marines were moving uphill more rapidly. I spent a half hour crouching in the cab of the abandoned truck. I still have a clear picture in mind of the moving scene before me. The fighter-bombers came swooping in from the east, laying down a carpet of bombs and rocket fire on the line of enemy bunkers that were closest tour crouched marines. As the bombs began raining down, our marines jumped up and scooted as far as possible while the enemy were unable to fire as they dug deep in the bunkers to avoid death. Ever twenty minutes, a repeat show of the bombing and strafing reoccurred allowing the large ants to sped closer to the enemy bunkers in order to toss in their hand grenades. Back where Phil was busy again, I began a conversation with one of the recent arrivals, a corporal who had his left leg in a splint. He seemed to be the least seriously injured of the growing group of incoming. I took him a drink of water and asked if he was willing to talk with me about his injury. 126 After a bit of hesitation he agreed. Once he began, he found it almost impossible to stop; she is the essence of what he told me. “Our position is a bit farther east. We were surrounded on three sides after one of their counter attacks. Each morning at first light, we were out of our bunkers and shooting our way up hill, hurling grenades and dropping mortar shells into the openings of the enemy bunkers. Then back into the bunkers. All we could do during the daylight was staying hunkered in our own bunker in a newly dug fox hole. At night we moved through the trenches to get material that was dropped and to fire our howitzers. We also took time to make more sandbags.” “Darkness was our ally and still is for my buddies up there. Some of our guys read or recited bible verses and most of us scratched ‘God help us’ on our helmets.” “I watched one of my buddies bleed to death despite our efforts because the enemy kept our copters from reaching us.” He stopped suddenly after a catch in his throat. I watched as the tears on his cheeks matched the ones on mine. “My poor damn buddies who are still up. God help them.” We sat in silence for a minute until he said “Let people back home know we are doing our dandiest for them. I’m sleepy.” At about 1700 I looked up from the marine I was sitting with and saw the major grinning at me. “It worked as we hoped. At daylight tomorrow morning I expect we will be at the top. Of course, we will have to face a series of fierce counterattacks but it is our victory.” “Congratulations, major. By the way, I never did get your name.” 127 “Leave it that way. There’s no reason for my name to appear in print. I hope you use all the names of those you have been helping here. Thank you for service beyond your call as a reporter.” I was to find out later that the battles for hills 861 and 881 were the bloodiest of the war that was true from my vantage point. I shall never forget the blood and gore, the true extent of which I could not include in my stories. The papers that Mickey and I represented would hardly want to print the worst of his pictures even if the censors had not nixed them. The bloodier pictures of the horror of Vietnam would be told by others or could be read in my journal but the pictures are indelibly marked in my memory/. My profiles and the two major stories were published by all my regional papers as well as the Times. My old boss at the times wrote of the special commendation I was to receive from the Editor and a special bonus for a job well done. Mickey and I found our way back to Saigon the caravan which kept picking up army soldiers who either was going on leave or, in some cases, returning to the states. Mickey and I got some additional photos and stories for future profiles. We managed two rooms at the Caravelle Hotel. I was exhausted, and after spending a half h our letting the water of the shower ran down on me for an hour, I sleeping for thirteen hours before awakening stiff and groggy. I was a real pleasure to slip into a dress and sandals. Mickey and I enjoyed a brief walk and lunch before I took off for my scheduled visit. 128 In the dining room I noticed a marine corporal seated alone. Mickey and I walked to his table and asked if we could join him. He smiled broadly and waved us to take seats. We discovered that he was on his way to some R and R in Hong Kong, his first leave in fourteen months. When I asked about his recent assignment, he said “Hill 881.” “When did you leave? We just arrived from there.” “I left yesterday morning. I had my fourth minor injury and was overdue for R&R.: “Were you there when the heavy bombing took place?” “I sure was and glad that they had finally called in the heavies.” “We are journalists. Mickey is, my brother, the photographer and I am a reporter. Do you mind telling us how you felt and what you did during the bombing.” A full flush took over his face while he pondered his response. Finally he said “I’ve never talked with a reporter. If I talk with you, will you shoot a picture that I can send home to my folks and to my girl?” Mickey said “I’ll do that whether you talk with my sis or not.” His face broke into a huge grin “My name is Ivan Tuborg and I live just outside Minneapolis. I’ve been in the Marines since I was eighteen, over six years now. The last thirty days have been the worst and scariest of all my time in Nam or Korea.” “How so?” “The NV guys have weapons and discipline that I never saw when fighting the Cong or the gooks. Climbing that hill is almost impossible. The goal is reach the top but the day to day 129 progress is so slow and painful that I began to feel that the only way off that hill was to be blown off or flown of.” “Watching the way the NV turn on the fire power against the birds I wasn’t even sure that I would survive even if injured and loaded onto a bird. I gagged two days earlier when one of my squad had been loaded onto a chopper and twenty seconds later seeing the bird blown out of the sky. All I could do when the heavy bombing started was lie on my back, sleep or listen to the jets flying and the bombs bursting and thinking of poor Joe.” “With nothing to do, all I seem to do was wonder what my chances were. I couldn’t write a letter. I tried to sing but got hushed by my buddies. I tried to imagine a future with my girl but the images continue to shift to life just outside the bunker.” His voice broke and I was sure that the glitter in his eyes was the tar drops he was fighting to hold back. I was sure there was much more to explore but this was not the moment. “Thanks, Corporal. Now tell me about yourself and your girl and family. I will write a profile and, with your permission, send it to your hometown newspaper.” He blew his nose and said “I need another cup of coffee.” I visited a maternity hospital and filed a story regarding the babies being adopted from Vietnam by families in the states and other western countries. I filed the following brief human-interest story. As I sat at the bedside, my interpreter told me that the woman talking with Luan, the about to be mother, was a counselor. “She is trying to convince Luan not to give up the baby for adoption. The young mother is saying that she cannot afford another baby to feed. She is telling the counselor that she has three 130 children at home and can hardly feed them on the small amount of pay that her soldier husband receives.” “As the story unfolds, the young mother says that there was no way to refuse her husband’s needs during this three-day furlough, even though she was aware that she was ripe for conception.” I can see that the counselor is making an offer of a small monthly stipend to assist her but, as I could see, Luan just shakes her head, turns away and begins to sob. The counselor speaks to my interpreter and leaves. I learn that the counselor is on her way to bring back the release forms for Luan to give up the baby for adoption. My heart is breaking for Luan. I can’t imagine the pain she is suffering to part with the fruit of her womb, but she sees no other choice. When I return to the lobby, Mickey is waiting there. He suggests we visit some of the injured men in the hospital. “There has to be some stories worth your while and certainly some photos that can tell stories without words.” He looked at me again. “What’s wrong, Sis?’ I take a moment to gather myself and then tell him the story of Luan. He said “Let’s take a break, have bite and a walk in the park before we go to the hospital. Forty minutes after our arrival in the rehab department, after completing my first interview. I heard a door opening, looked up to see Johnny Kote, the private I had met on the convoy. He was in a wheel chair. My heart lurched as I noticed that my friend was missing his left leg. 131 After a moment to get a grip on myself, I rushed over to greet him, forcing my lips to form a smile. “Hello, Johnny. Remember me?” He gave me a blank look then turned to avoid looking at me. It was reminiscent of his turning from me that day in the truck. It was silly but I had the feeling of being rejected. His nurse smiled at me, nodding in a way that said we could talk later. I continued to watch from a distance, seeing Johnny resisting the physical therapist. After a bit, I watched him physically striking the therapist, who was apparently pressing him to participate. I wanted to rush right over and remind him of the love of his parents and tell him that missing one leg would be no big deal to the girl who loved him. Little did I know that his demons were of a greater nature than the loss of one leg? Mary, the nurse, moved toward me. “I have a short break time. Care to join me for a cup of coffee?” Seated at a table in the cafeteria, she said “ It’s a damned shame but he is one of many who are having traumatic stresses after their experiences.” “Do you know the reasons in Johnny’s case?” “Partly. He refuses to talk with the psychologist but confides in me when I am attending to his wounds. It seems that during a VC attack on his convoy, he witnessed his buddy step on a mine, get blown to pieces while some of the shrapnel tore into his left leg and some smaller bits sunk into his side and back. He keeps having flashbacks and does not want to talk about it with anyone but me.” “I saw him fighting his physical therapist.” “Yes. He doesn’t want to get well. His psychologist thinks that is because his buddy, Billy, is gone and that he, Johnny, 132 should be gone too. The night nurse says he is having nightmares that must include something close to his experience since he yells out Billy’s name quite often.” Mary filled me in on other learning’s about the minds of some of the injured soldiers and marines until it was time for her to wheel Johnny to his bed. My eyes were tear-filled as I tried to get his attention once more but without success. Mickey had an idea that he felt might be worthwhile. “Let’s go to the day room and talk with some of the guys who will be heading home soon. That turned out to be a good move. Just as we walked through the door, a young patient yelled spots Mickey with his camera. He yells, “Here comes the camera man to take my picture.” Mickey picks up on the comment and immediately takes a head shot of the young man. I walk over to him and ask, “What name do I use and what is the name of your newspaper?” “”Jeff Wright and the paper is the St Lois Dispatch.” Others good-naturedly started to clamor for their pictures to be taken. We spent the next two hours taking pictures and getting individual stories that I could use. The guys inundate us with chocolate bars and cokes and telling us loads of wry jokes before we leave Mickey promises to have copies of their pictures developed and brought to the ward within the next two days. Among the many stories I uncovered was that of Mike Sloan, whose warm smile moved me to tears as I approached his wheel chair and discovered he had lost both legs. I started to put my notebook back n my bag but he said in his Australian accent. “I don’t mind talking about it.” 133 I filed the story of this infantryman at the battle of ApMya, who was the victim of a mortar blast, unable to be reached by a medic for more than an hour. I filled in the story with details of his family life at home with a dad, a bricklayer, his mom, a part time artist, three sisters and his girl friend, Myra. He was bright and cheerful as he told me of his close relationship with all of the above. He handed two letters, urging me to read both. The first was a letter he handed me to read notifying him of acceptance to the university at Sidney, beginning at the date of his choice. As I started to read the other letter I asked “Are you sure you want me to read this. It looks like a love letter.” “Yes, if you don’t mind. You have the last page only and I need someone to share this news with me. I don’t dare talk about this with my mates here.” The letter was obviously from his Myra “you know that missing limbs will not keep us from loving each other. It was your tenderness, your love what won my heart. Those came from your brain and your heart. I know our love will find a way to a fulfilling life.” “And we are going to make a baby or two together. I recently met another slightly older woman whose husband is limited in the way you are. He stepped on a mine while serving in Korea. She has two lovely blond daughters she laughed when I gasped at her news.” “She invited me to a private gathering for a cup of tea and in the privacy of her home; she shared with me the techniques of making physical love with her husband.” 134 I looked up from the letter and saw Mike grinning and I found myself shedding tears of joy to have spent these moments with this indomitable spirit from down under. Just as we were ready to leave, another handsome young blond patient entered in a wheel chair, being pushed by a nurse. I walked over to introduce myself. “Hyah. Is it solder or marine?” He laughed and said “Nope.” Sailor?” “Closer.” “Naval aviator?” “Bingo.” I put out my hand for a handshake. He grasped mine in both his and said “Jay Mann, lieutenant, assigned to flying P-3’s at Cam Ranh Bay, temporarily rerouted to this day room.” “I’m Cathy Cheka, reported for several small newspapers and occasional contributor to the New York Times. I would be honored if you can see it clear to let me interview you.” Instead of answering he turned to the nurse who was about to leave. “Jane, do you think I can get permission for another few hours away from this foul smelling rooming house?” With a sly smile she said “I’m sure that I can convince Dr. McPhail. Count on it. See you later.” He turned to me. “Dear Cathy, you are so rare I might do anything for you. You are the first good looking civilian woman to want to talk to me. I’m willing under one condition.” It sounded like he wanted to play some game and I decided to play along. “Name it.” “The interview will take place off premises at a small restaurant a block away. It will be in a private booth with a curtain 135 to close us off from the world. I’m buying but I also get the privilege of holding hands with you during our time together.” I could feel the first rise of a blush and then giggled “Sailor boy, are you asking me to go on a date with you?” He reached for my hand again and said “I sure am. Spending a few hours with a beautiful woman will do wonders for me through the long hours of rehab that are part of my future.” “Jay, I will be delighted to be your date for the evening.” He grinned and kept on holding my hand. I waved to Brother Mickey and introduced them and had Mickey take some pics of the two of us and some of Jay alone. “ What are the arrangements and time, Jay?” “Come by about six thirty. Jane will have me in my good duds and show you how to propel this buggy down the street.” “Sounds right.” At six thirty three I appeared at the front entrance waiting for Jay to arrive. I had taken pains to appear as attractive as possible. He let out a whistle and a whoop. “Look, Jane. Isn’t she beautiful? Long legs, nice breast and a special coif to impress me. I am the luckiest guy in the world tonight.” I laughed even though I knew I was blushing. I teased him. “I think the expression is Down Boy.” Jane laughed, gave me a brief orientation and said “Be a good boy, Jay” He roared “If only.” We sat side by side, had a five course meal with excellent wine to complement the food. Jay held my hand, letting go only when necessary to allow time to partake of the variety of dishes. 136 I found out that he was a graduate of Northwestern, an avid aviator from his earliest years. He had dreams of being a commercial airline pilot after his military service He had a girl back home, although not formally engaged but “She and I will be one for life and make babies together” I had a difficult time trying not to envy the love affair he was describing and the depth of feeling that he expressed for loved one .For those few moments I regretted not making more of an effort to spend time with those boys who wanted to dates me. He asked me about my life and answered every question I put to him. I waited until I thought he was ready to talk about his injury. When the waiter had cleared the dessert dishes, Jay said “I guess I’m ready to talk about that day.” Since Jay insisted on holding hands, I had to rely on my later memory but here is the essence of what I wrote during the long hours afterwards. “Shortly after my arrival at Naha, Okinawa, I was assigned to fly as co-pilot to a very distinguished naval aviator, the commander of our squadron of P-3s. That aircraft is more than an observation plane. It is a virtual platform of weapons to serve our responsibility which was to protect the aircraft carrier s sailing off the coast of Vietnam in the South China Sea. The area is dotted with Junks, many just fishing for the day’s catch but a good many also gathering intelligence from our radio transmissions and keeping track of all our sea and air activity. There are plenty of Russian submarines doing the same. Every once in a while the Junks with their well hidden machine guns and twenty millimeter canons take a toll of the Navy aircraft as the aircraft were landing or taking off. 137 Standard procedure requires the flight commander to be the first in and the last out of any assigned destination. The destination of our flight from Okinawa was Cam Ranh Bay, about 125 miles from Saigon. The airstrip houses a squadron of USAF fighters as well as several squadrons of naval P-3’s. The skipper was in the left hand seat, the seat of the Pilot in Command. He admitted later that his proficiency was not at its peak since he had so much administrative duties and had flown less often than his squadron pilots. The flight was smooth and visibility ideal. As we were approaching our target, we could see smoke ahead. It appeared to be at the sight of the airfield. Our curiosity was peaked for the moment before we were notified that an Air Force fighter had an emergency. We guessed a long delay even before we were ordered into a holding pattern. Flying tight circles over the South China Sea is boring and is rather risky Ammo fired from the Junks could come flying at any time. Just as Pete, the skipper, started to say something to me, I felt a sharp jolt and the whole plane shudder. Instantly I knew that we had been hit by enemy fire. Since I was flying the plane, I sensed a change in the feel of wheel in my hands. I motioned to Pete to take the wheel, He understood and did so. A moment later he started to speak when the voice of our engineer came on the intercom. “Our hydraulic system has been compromised.” He continued “We have taken a serious hit in our tail section, affecting our hydraulic system, which means we are in a state of emergency.” 138 I have to say that no matter how much training and theoretical preparation one has for being in combat, there is no real psychological preparation for the first damage one suffers from an enemy hit. I felt a sense of panic overtaking me. It may amaze you but the action and behavior of a strong leader can affect one’s response and behavior. My skipper betrayed no nervousness or tension and that soon translated to me. We were in a full blown emergency and needed to land immediately the damaged fighter on the ground was just off the main runway but his hung ordnance, including five hundred pound bombs, was scattered across the runway. There was no way that the material could be cleared in time for our having to land and we had to land ASAP before the hydraulic failure seriously affected our controls Pete pressed the switch on is microphone. “Control, we have been hit and losing control. We need to land to save this big bird.” “One moment, stand by.” Less than ten seconds elapsed before I heard the voice “Here are your instructions. You are cleared to land on runway 280, “Start your approach as of now.” The control tower had given us permission to land on the Marsten Matting Steel Runway. The problem was that this runway was four thousand feet shorter and definitely narrower than the main concrete runway. I heard the skipper say “Jay, I just read your efficiency report and am sure your flight proficiency is at its peak whereas I haven’t been doing much flying recently. Switch seats and take command. We need steady and sure hands. I will have the right hand wheel if necessary but I don’t expect to be needed.” 139 I felt like my blood turned icy cold and my mind was focused on the task ahead. Six minutes later we exited the runway and parked at the Navy ramp. I was the last to debark when the air was split with the blast of a five hundred pound bomb exploding. There was no damage to the plane or my buddies but I was blacked out after a piece of shrapnel tore into my hip and thigh and another smaller one jammed into my left foot. I am sure that the pain was so severe that I just blacked out in order to escape the pain. Welcome to Vietnam, Day One.” Jay took my napkin and dabbed away the tears that were sliding down my cheeks. “No need to cry. The pain is subsiding and I have been promised a body good enough to fly again. My dream is in place.” I gave him a tiny smile and nodded. “Now tell me about one of your near misses since coming to this mess.” Much later at the entry way to the hospital, he said “We probably will never see each other again so I have one more favor to ask. Would you lock the wheels on this chair, sit in my lap and gave me a warm hug and a deep kiss like my girl did on the last night we spent together?” I did as asked. The following day I had a wire asking me to call my old boss at the Times. “Cathy, great to hear your voice.” “Same here, boss. What’s the big deal? Out of the blue “How would you like to come to work for the Times, full time, both you and Mickey?” 140 “Are you kidding?” “Dead serious?” “Just a moment.” I turned to Mickey who was sitting on my bed. “Want to join me on the staff of the Times, full time, starting soon?” “I’d jump; at the chance.” I spoke into the phone. “We’re in. When?’ “Aren’t you going to ask me about salary, benefits, what kind of work?” “We trust you will take care of us as you always have for me in the past.” “All right. I need you to book flights directly to Tel Aviv, where you will have your first assignment for the next thirty days and then return to New York. I will wire you the funds today. When you check into the Hilton in Tel Aviv, I will have someone there to brief you. Arab and Israeli hostilities are heating up.” In the midst of my excitement I hadn’t asked why this sudden need for our services. I guess I had so much confidence in my old boss and friend. I spent most of the time during our flights going over my notes, being interrupted when my memories centered on Billy, Johnny and some of the others I had tended during the battle for hill 881. I wondered which of them might well be suffering the same emotional disorder that was affecting Johnny. In the years that followed we were all to see veterans among the homeless and jobless who dotted the landscape of our cities. I had hours of reminiscing about those few weeks that we had been in the killing fields. I would never be the same innocent girl, dreaming about being a reporter. 141 The opening chapters of my dream had been more than I expected. After being hustled and elbowed in the midst of anti war protests, I had then lived in the midst of battle zones where men were killing each other, seeing the human toll of war, learning curse words I had no idea existed. I had laughed and cried with dozens of marines and sailors my heart was heavy with those memories as I continued to pursue my dream. All this was hardly a scratch on the surface of the Vietnam experience but I was no longer the innocent as I departed the land where I had expected to spend many more months. 142 Chapter 7. Michele Abrams met the two of us at the El Al arrival gate, holding up a placard with our last name. She drove us to the Hilton, handled our registrations and gave us time to shower before taking us to a corner table in the dining room. Michele identified herself as a stringer for the Times as well as a reporter for several regional papers in Israel. She, too, was educated at Barnard, class of 1962. “Were you born here or, like so many, an immigrant.” “Born here during the years when the people were struggling to form this nation. My dad was a journalist, who lost his life during those turbulent years that followed? He was a close friend of David Ben-Gurion, whom many consider to be our George Washington. Both carried rifles like most residents during those formative years.” “How about you two? I notice your flight originated in Manila. You don’t have to answer that. I am just curious.” “Mickey, my brother and I were teamed up in Vietnam for a short time before we were ordered to come to Tel Aviv. It is our understanding that you will be briefing us as to why we are here. We have no idea since we have been focused on Vietnam.” “Well, let’s get started after our food arrives. Michele had some iced tea while we fed our starving bodies. “I guess you are here because New York sees you as a good war time journalist and photography team. It seems clear that Israel is about to be attacked by some combination of three nations, Egypt, Syria and Jordan. There may even be soldiers from Iraq.” 143 “What has been happening to bring you and others to that conclusion?” “You are aware that the Arab nations have one common goal, which is the nonexistence of the state of Israel. Last November Egypt and Syria signed a mutual defense pact. Skirmishes continue to occur on the Syrian and Jordanian borders, largely instigated by those two nations. Early this month Nasser of Egypt began amassing his troops in the Sinai, an area designated to be occupied only by United Nations Emergency Forces.” “The Straits of Tiran, Israel’s shipping opening to world trade, were to be available at all times. That was part of the original agreements.in1957. Israel made it clear that any attempt to close the Straits was justification for war. Last week Nasser declared the Straits closed to Israel shipping. The following day Iraqi troops were deploying in Jordan, obviously at the king’s request.” “I heard today that our government has met in an emergency session to make some changes in its governance structures. That sounds ominous to me. That is about it.” “Thanks, Michele. That was a concise and to the point. Do you have anything else for us?” “Yes, a large packet of material that was flown in last night. It’s in my room. I also have cards for opening up bank accounts for you individually and access to the business account of the Times. We need to go to the bank in the morning to complete the paper work. I also have your visas that were mailed to me, which I used on your behalf at the airport. It’s your turn to ask questions.” Mickey suggested “Let’s hold off on the questions until we are rested. How about in the morning for breakfast before we go to the bank?” 144 I nodded and Michele agreed. “Sorry, I forgot all about the long trip across so many time zones. I’ll leave the package at the front desk for you and see you at nine in the morning.” I was asleep within minutes of closing my room door and wide awake at four in the morning I went down to the front desk and retrieved the package from New York. Inside were the contracts and some ideas for placing ourselves in position to cover the emerging story of what New York believed would be the outbreak of hostilities. Bill Calhoun, my old boss, included a note. “Just for the record, all the big boys here were so impressed with you profiles that showed your sensitivity to the plight of our marines and sailors. They were highly impressed with your coverage of the events at hill 881.You noticed that the last stories carried your name and identified Mickey as the photographer. When this opportunity arose I had no difficulty getting you assigned.” “The opening came as the result of one of our reporters getting an attack of appendicitis right after we had reassigned the other to Greece to cover events that are coming to a boil there. Good luck. We may have a veteran on hand within three weeks. We’ll definitely bring you back home within the month and then explore your futures at that time. Meanwhile, you should know that I am serving as the interim managing editor. Blessings.” “By the way, I called your mom to tell her why she may find a delay in your letter writing.” I took pen to paper. I reminded Bill that I had a contract with the other papers regarding Vietnam and since I accepted this assignment I wanted to submit stories from Israel “I hope you will be agreeable if I can work out an arrangement with them.” I then wrote to my other client, explaining and apologizing. A week later all was well on both fronts. My being present in Israel 145 at the dawn of another war was as important to those newspapers as much as our presence in Vietnam served them. Mickey decided to become the photographer of the man on the street, shooting pics of shoppers, bench-warmers and chess players in the park, young women in the coffee houses While chatting with them he got their opinions about life in this tiny nation, constantly under siege of its enemies. He figured the brief profiles would be of interest to readers back home. During dinner on the second evening Mickey said to me “Sis, it is obvious that something big is in the offing. Walking the streets has given me a chance to note something unusual. There are practically no young people around. I’m guessing that they have been called up to active duty, as military reservists.” I trudged to the public affairs office of the army, dug though the morgues of the various newspapers, talked with editors and reporters as I tried to get a full picture on what had been happening. I attended press briefings from the army and other governmental agencies I wanted t be certain that I had a full picture of past events and a context for the action that seemed to be in the offing. I also spent some time each day doing some power walking to get into shape. I had no idea where or how I might be assigned if some military activity was in the offing but I caught a hint that I might consider going toward the east in the direction of Jordan or Syria, where action could be heavy if hostilities broke out. Events of the past month pointed to a definite threat from the combination of Egypt, Jordan, Syria and Iraq were planning something in the near future. The Israelis were sure that the enemy 146 had only one goal in mind, “Throw the Israelis into the Mediterranean Sea.” Getting into shape had been a good idea but it came a little too late. Early in the morning of June 5th, my beautiful dream that had me dancing in a meadow was shattered when Mickey started pounding on my door. “C’mon, Cathy. Israel is at war.” “Damn. I’ll never find a way to the West Bank of the Jordan river with movements being restricted.” The army information office had suggested that I would be well served by being on the road toward Ramallah when hostilities broke out. The evening before, Michele, Mickey, a reporter for Reuters, and I had dinner together, trying to figure out how best to get news from the battle zones when the battles began. We had decided to pool our efforts. Mickey would head for Gaza, having heard that the governor was a strong military type, who might lead an invasion from the flank. I would head for troops defending the approach from the West Bank of the Jordan river since Israel felt that Jordan, even though reluctant, was really aligned with Syria and Egypt. There were strong units of Iraqi soldiers supplanting the Jordan forces. Michele would try to spend some time with two friends, who were army officers, currently stationed just outside Tel Aviv and line up a phone conversation, with friends who were on kibbutz near the Syrian border. Our cohort from Reuters, Lester Jones, would station himself with the press officer of the department of defense for whatever official information would be available. Now that the hostilities were engaged it was time to gathering my gear, a paper cup of coffee and a stale doughnut, I 147 headed toward the road leading toward Ramallah. I hung a sign say “American Press” around my neck and started thumbing for a ride. Three minutes later a huge truck stopped and someone in the cab waved to the back of the truck. I scrambled in with a hand from one of riders, who happened to be an army photographer “Welcome to the war. I’m Saul Avers. Are you sure you want to go where we are going? I haven’t run into American women reporters in Israel.” I smiled and said, “If you’re headed toward the Jordanian border, then the answer is yes. I’m Cathy Checks with the New York Times.” “You’re in. Welcome aboard.” “Do you have any news you can share?” “Early this morning Jordan troops bombed Wet Jerusalem and just as we were leaving you probably heard some of bombs falling outside Tel Aviv. I also head that their planes attacked one of our air fields but our planes were already air born.” “Any word on how this started?” “No. I only know the little I told you.” “Any infantry action?” “I haven’t heard.” When we halted, my new friend, Saul, introduced me to the press officer who said I could follow the Harel brigade, which would be at some of the most intense activity. “We probably will not go into action until tomorrow as plans stand at present although all is subject to change. When we do, please take care and don’t get you killed on my watch. Have you any experience? ” “I just arrived from Vietnam.” “Good. Welcome. Remember. Watch your ass.” 148 I spent the day interviewing some of the infantrymen for my planned profile series, similar to my prior submissions. Saul agreed to do some photos of my subjects. One soldier’s story, in particular, struck me hard. Sol Abramovitz had been urgently requested to join his unit, leaving his wife in the hospital just as she was entering the delivery room to give birth to their first. Sol still doesn’t know if he has a son or daughter or if all was well.” I mentioned this story to the press officer who told me later that day that Sol had a son and all was well and that Sol’s mind was now focused on his job. What he meant was that any thought of an interview were out of the question. The brigade moved out the next evening after dark. They started the attack of the fortress at Latrun. Fierce battles raged throughout the night. Not able to see any of the action I attached my self to a major of infantry, who occasionally filled me in. When we entered the city in the morning, the men were given two hours to rest and eat some hot food. “Miss Cheka”, the major called. “Join me for some eggs and coffee.” When I agreed and sat down he said. “We will be on the go in about two hours. This brigade will move northwest toward the mountain above Jerusalem. We expect strong opposition. I will try to make it possible for you to see as much as you can but I want to be sure you are safe enough to write your stories. Understand?” “Yes I should tell you that I also want to focus on the personal side of the war, telling about those of you who are on the line, giving readers an understanding of who is putting their life on the line for the country and its citizens. I would like to use names when permitted but even profiles without names are of interest as I found in Vietnam.” 149 He said “I agree and you have my permission to pursue that as you are able.” I smiled and thanked him, asking “How about you? Are you willing to be my first?” He laughed “Perhaps, when we finish the task ahead of us.” The battle for Radar Hill was intense and fierce but with far fewer casualties than I had witnessed at hill 881 in Vietnam. Hanging on to the coat tails of the major I was suddenly in the midst of unfriendly fire. The major did not believe in leading from behind. He must have forgotten about my presence. At one point I found myself hugging mother earth wishing I had a shovel to dig a foxhole. I was in no position for about an hour to do anything but lie low. The noise was deafening. Planes were roaring overhead. Rifle fire was rapid as was the exchange of mortar fire. My thoughts were racing, sorry I had not written a letter to mama last night. I was scared; more so than at any time in Vietnam. I found myself praying, regretting having given up going to church. I was a total mess wondering if I had dirtied my panties. I had seen a great deal in Nam but had never been in the midst of battle as I was now. I jumped when a sergeant tapped me on the shoulder. “The firing has eased up. The major thinks you should walk back to the evacuation area where it is safer.” “Since I haven’t seen any of the fighting, with my nose in the mud, do you think I can hand around for a bit longer?” He winked. “I didn’t hear that but I’ll be back later to see if you listened to the major’s order.” He was whistling as he walked away. 150 Two minutes later I found my photographer friend, Saul, and followed him around for twenty minutes. I took notes as he talked of what he had witnessed while I flat on the ground. As we parted, he promised to send some photos to the Hilton, when possible. A side note. He had one picture, which he titled “Nice View”, me flat on my face in the dirt and my fanny in the center of the photo. By evening, the hill was taken and we arrived in Ramallah... There we received news that we would have another rest period because e the Israel Air Force had decimated the Jordanian brigade headed toward Jerusalem. I was informed that heavy fighting was taken place between Jordanians and Israeli paratroopers in Jerusalem while we proceeded eastward toward the West Bank of the Jordan River, where the Jordanian infantry had engaged Israeli troops. The next morning it seemed to me that the Harel brigade was suddenly on the defensive, for the first time, until Israeli planes roared overhead and attacked enemy forces. Thereafter, I was told, the Jordan army was retreating to the east bank of the Jordan River, ceding the West Bank to the Israelis. Later I was to find out that it had not been the plan to take the West Bank. The brigade was to stop at the original border and not invade any Jordan territory, but as it happens many times, plans go awry in the heat of battle. I offered the nurses to help in the aid station but was told that it was not permissible. I did have time to chat with some of the wounded, most of who were more interested about life in the States than answering my questions. 151 I found time to set up conversation for at least a half dozen profiles before I asked the major if there would be some transport I might catch to get back to Tel Aviv “Definitely. If you join me for some coffee I can check your notes and perhaps supplement them while my orderly arranges transport.” Thirty minutes later with enriched notes I was on my way. I slept in the cab of an ambulance carrying three injured soldiers to the hospital and had to be awakened when the ambulance stopped by the Hilton Hotel to drop me off. After a long shower and a quick bite in the dining room I headed off to find Lester at the IDF press office, where the press officers of the Israel Defense Force would read my submissions and wire them off to my office in New York. “Lester gave me the official handout with statements that seemed unbelievable According to his information the Air Force had wiped out the entire Jordanian Air Force, ninety percent of the Egyptian and two thirds of the Syrian Air Force I said, “That sounds unbelievable, like an exaggeration.” “That’s what we all believed but as of today, only one of those air craft has penetrated Israeli skies, which sort of confirms early reports.” All I could say was “Wow.” “By the way, I filed the facts and figures report to your paper explaining our agreement and Mickey called ten minute before you arrived. He is on his way back with some stories and photos of the Gaza action, which I understand has been rather fierce.” “He spent an extra day in the Sinai and saw the battle outside the gates of El-Arish.” 152 The host provided me a table and typewriter to complete m work. Lester and I found a tiny family runs café in which to have dinner. Arriving back at the office we were greeted by Mickey and an Israeli woman correspondent who had taken him in tow, starting with a ride toward Gaza in her paper’s jeep. Sue was a motherly type, ten years our senior and a working reporter for ten years. “Cathy, it’s so nice to meet you. I’m Sue Boxer and I conned young Mickey into being my photographer with a bribe of being his guide and chauffer. My editor will try to hire him when he sees some of the pics, such art in the middle of war.” “He is fantastic, isn’t he? Nice to meet you.” I walked over to give Mickey a huge hug and asked for his notes so I could prep them for New York. He handed me three beautifully typed stories, written by Sue as a joint submission to the Times, hopefully special enough to get at least one byline. Mickey said “Thanks to Sue, I was able to get a fast development of my photos. He handed me the envelope with the pictures, gorgeous and gruesome but definitely depicting the gamut of responses to the fierceness if war, from victory to defeat, from joy to pain, from laugher to tears. Ten pictures, which in my mind spoke more than a thousand of my words. “Sue used her charm to get these developed in the army mobile lab. I sue hope we get at least one byline in the Times.” When Mickey and I were alone, I told him of my fear in the midst of the intense battle with the Jordanians “”I was so damned scared, Mickey. Nothing in Nam was this scary.” Mickey folded me in his arms. “I am so sorry we were so apart but I have to admit I had minutes just like you had. Sue, who is a real veteran, said that there was no shame in being frightened but it was important to proceed in spite of our fear. It certainly helped me. It seems that you did the same, sis.” 153 “I guess I did.” I had a wire from New York asking the two of us to spend three days snooping around for reactions among some civilians but trying especially to get an interview with either of the top generals, Dayan or Rabin. On the last morning I was able to get twenty minutes with General Moishe Dayan, the first to have an exclusive interview Three key points emerged from that interview. He was definitely hawkish, stated clearly that he had a personal unspoken reason for overseeing directly the taking of East Jerusalem, was adamant that the captured territories of Gaza, West Bank and Golan Heights, should be absorbed by Israel. He was definitely pleased when I offered him photos taken by Mickey in Gaza and was delighted to pose for a portrait. I promised to send him a copy for his records. He insisted that Mickey take a photo of the two of us together. He beamed as he shook hands at our departure. Two of my other newspapers printed the photo of Dayan and me along with the profile of the general. This story got me a front-page byline and a commendation from my boss. His wire indicated that we were going home early, replacements on the way. Two very tired travelers debarked American Airlines flight 1001 at three in the afternoon of June 16th, 1967 to be met by the boss and a chauffeured limo, driven to a boutique hotel downtown and ordered to sleep and rest until noon the following day. 154 Morning in New York felt like evening but we both ordered sausage and eggs and lots of toast, a treat we had not enjoyed since our last breakfast here in the city. We were having our third cup of coffee when mom, dad and Aunt Kate walked through the entrance to the dining room for a joyous reunion. The grins and smiles never left our faces during the next hour while the family had brunch and we inhaled more coffee. Dad said “Your boss, Mr. Calhoun, must think a lot of you, bringing us, here for a whole weekend. You should see the size of our room. It is beautiful, too rich for a coal miner.” Mickey popped up. “Dad, you deserve it. Nothing is too rich for any of the three of you.” It was just the right comment and we changed the subject to planning what sights we would take in during those few days. The waiter interrupted to tell me that I was wanted on the phone. “Cathy, this is Bill. Have you reached a point with the family gathering where you can escape for an hour or so and come to the office?” “Absolutely. We’ll grab a cab and be there in thirty minutes.” “Good. See you.” Kate agreed to take mom and dad to the Statue of Liberty and meet us for drinks at the hotel at six thirty. The welcome home and welcome aboard party at the office was intimate but heavy with the presence of the Editor, Foreign Editor, City Editor and Features Editor, all of whom were very welcoming and laudatory. The Editor made a brief comment on behalf of the staff, ending with “Congratulations and thank you for coming to our rescue. Thanks to you, we have some of the most specific and important news 155 from the battle zone. The profiles present some insight on the personal side of war. Mr. Cheka, your photos are outstanding.” Bill took us to his office after the gathering and said further conversation regarding our futures could wait until the following Monday. “You must have felt the sincerity of my associates as they congratulated you. There is no doubt that you filled the shoes of our regular staff and used your creativity to get those results.” “Now, here is someone who was late to the party. We turned to see Jay Foy, Mickey’s future father-in-law and his mentor in news photography and my very special friend and sponsor. He was glowing as he congratulated us. Bill finally shooed us out, saying he had to work. We adjourned to the journalists’ bar; a few doors around the corner, spending an hour bring Jay up to date. We finally parted after agreeing to come to dinner the next evening. As Jay said, “We need to take the opportunity to have both families get to know each other before the merger of Julie and Mickey.” After a long day of sight seeing, we cabbed to the Foy home, arriving about six thirty, observing, as we stepped out of the cab, the long and breath taking kiss between the two young lovers. Mickey and I had deferred some of the stories until the evening. We knew that our families would want to know the good and the bad. We met their need minus some of the gory details. The women were in tears some in compassion and some out of fear of danger that had confronted the two of us. It was a great gathering with mama ad Phyllis finding much to talk about while Kate and I spent the evening talking shop with dad and Jay. Julie had lassoed Mickey and disappeared. They finally emerged, as we were ready to depart. On the way home Mickey said. “I hope its okay with you that I asked Julie to meet us 156 at breakfast and spend the day sightseeing with us.” What could I say to a young Romeo? Sunday afternoon at five, we put the three of them into a limo headed for LaGuardia and the flight to Pittsburgh. Tears abounded as we promised a visit in the fall and at Christmas. At the time I felt sure we would be able to do that. We were summoned into Bill’s office at ten on Monday morning. “All finished with your paper work? Find your temporary desks?” We responded in the affirmative. Have a seat while I call Fred Martin, head of the foreign desk and Mac Mc Arthur of the national desk.” Three minutes later we were being introduced to both. “Are both of you still determined to work mostly as a team?” We both nodded affirmatively without even looking at each other. “Both of these gentlemen would be willing to have your team assigned to them. We have an idea but you need to tell us which you prefer as a first assignment?” I answered. “Mickey and I discussed this on our flight home. If possible we would be pleased to spend some time overseas. We agree that it need not be covering military although that is our total experience to date. We both like doing special features and politics. Mickey would be good at whatever.” Bill looked at Fred who nodded. “Fred and I guessed that but we have a recommendation. There is still much for you to learn and we would like you to get some experience under our tutelage. We are suggesting that your desks stay in the city department and that you will work with Mac until you get an overseas assignment. Then even when you come home for any period of time, you will 157 work with Mac. We’d like to try this out for a year, if it sounds feasible.” After a fifteen-minute period of questions, all was agreed to. As we were ready to separate, Fred asked “Before you go to your desks stop by for some coffee and a chance to meet a few of our staff while I let them know what is coming down the road?” When we finally reached our desks, I found fifteen letters from friends and some of my former staffers at the Columbia News congratulating Mickey and me. At the bottom of the pile I found one from Dinah, my high school friend. Her plaudits were effusive. She wrote in her last paragraph “Ever since we spent that short time in Washington, listening to Dr. Martin Luther King, I have been involved civil rights affairs, currently working with voter registration in some southern state. Mr. Vernon Jordan is our inspiration and hard working leader.” She included her phone number and asked to send her mine. “It would be wonderful to play catch up with my famous buddy from Coalton.” I decided to wait until evening to call Dinah. Mickey left early for a date with Julie; I was daydreaming at .my desk when the phone rang. ”This is the receptionist at the front desk. You have a visitor who is being escorted to your office, Miss Cheka. He wanted it to be a surprise so I said ok if accompanied by one of our guards, I hope it is okay.” There was a light rap at the doorway just as I hung up. I gasped and froze in my chair. There in the door way stood this handsome male specimen, six feet tall, dark curly hair, a build to die for by any woman and a warm, smile that I remembered so well. “Hello Cathy” 158 Chapter 8. “Johnny. Johnny Wheldon, what are you doing here?” “Surprising you, I hope.” “You certainly are.” I rose, saying, reservedly, “and a beautiful surprise. You are a sight for sore eyes.” I had been practicing that lie for years just in the event we ever met. That was an outright lie. Anger welled up as I remembered the weeks of waiting for a letter from Johnny after his move from Coalton. I did my best to hide my feelings. He stepped forward and opened his arms to give me a hug, as old friends might. I may have seemed calm and friendly but I was literally quivering on the inside. This was my teenage love that never kept his promise to write to me and forgot me the moment his family moved. I should, have in, a polite way, sent him on his way He was bad news, but why was my heart beating so fast? I felt the heat in my face and realized that my breathing was shallow. “Are you too busy for company?” I started to say yes but instead found myself saying “No. In fact, I am done for the day.” “Good. Would you like to join me for a drink and possibly dinner if you are not otherwise engaged?” Hesitant, as I remembered our sharp break up, but eager to find out what his life was about, I said “A drink would be great”, leaving my options open. Seeing him in person after more than six years had me roiling in turmoil. I wavered between being angry about the past or pleased that he took the time to find me after all these years. 159 We had our drinks at the table in the restaurant around the corner. It was too early for dinner but the bar was noisy. Johnny’s charm worked encouraging the maître d’ into giving us privacy and quiet. “Booth or table?” I said “Table” in order to make certain that we sat across the table instead of side by side in a booth When our drinks were served, I said a little stiffly” Start with why you are here, Johnny. I figured I would never see you again. You broke your promise to write. The hell with you, Johnny Wheldon.” With tears in my eyes, I stood and rushed towards the door. Johnny rushed after me and grasped my elbow so hard that it gave me a sharp pain “Ouch. You monster.” I tried to break the hold but to no avail. Please don’t leave. The least you can do is hear me out. I’m here because I need to talk.” There was something in his voice that softened me enough to let him lead me back to the table. “All right. I’ll listen and then leave.” “I felt miserable when you did not answer my letters to you during the weeks after our family move.” I stood t ready to give him an angry retort but he held up his hand. “A few weeks ago while I was recuperating from my wounds, I said to my mother. “Another byline for Cathy. She has been making her mark. I often wonder why she never responded to my letters.” I was looking directly at her and saw her blush. “Mother, what is it?” She said “Dear. I didn’t think it wise for you to continue that puppy love relationship with a young girl of her class. I picked both your letters out of the outgoing mail. I never did see any incoming letters from her.” I exploded, could not keep the tears 160 from flowing and walked out of the room. Two days later I moved into my own apartment.” I was stunned, unable to peak for a minute, then in a choked voice I squeaked “Oh, Johnny, I waited and waited and sank into a deep funk.” “I am so sorry. If you only knew how I felt when the woman I loved cut me off without a word.” “What a waste. Well, we have managed to survive.” I laughed to cover up my confusion about the meaning of what I had just heard. “Tell me about what happened since then.” “Transition to a new high school was a little difficult but that passed quickly. At the end of two years at McGill University, dad was promoted to the corporate headquarters. I had been struggling about a decision to accept my draft calls to the military or stay in Canada. I decided to accept my responsibility and joined the marines and became a machine gunner assigned to helicopters flying personnel into and out of combat zones.” “You enlisted?” “Yes, although I could have continued to finish out my studies at McGill. It seemed the right thing to do. I don’t regret it, even if I came to believe that it was a fruitless venture in which we will not emerge victorious. I believe that view is held by a lot of the Vietnamese population for whom we, theoretically, were fighting this war.” He continued “That is not what they want but I do believe it is what they expect.” I interjected “I never quite reached that decision, having been asked to go to Israel after just a few weeks in Nam. Johnny shouldn’t you still be there?” “Yes, normally, but losing a few digits on my right foot earned me a purple heart and a trip back to civilian life.” 161 “Oh, Johnny, are you free to talk about it?” “There is not much to it. Standing in the open hatchway with the mounted gun does expose one. I don’t know if you experienced it but when approaching the fire zone, we machine gunners were told to continue rapid fire into the jungle because, of course, there was no way to see the Viet Cong. The barrage would tend to keep them from firing at us. Despite the withering fire we put down, every once in a while some VC would shoot at us. I was in the wrong place at the right time.” I wanted to go around the table and hug him but at the moment he was still a stranger, in spite of our early love affair.” So what are you doing now?” “I’ve enrolled at Columbia to get my degree in Poli Sci and Economics.” I had noticed that he wore no ring on his left hand but hesitated to ask when Johnny asked “Are you in a relationship at the present? I looked but do not see a ring.” “No. How about you?” “No. Never found anyone who could match what you meant to me, even if we were young.” I could see from his expression that he wanted a comment from me. “I’ve been so busy with school and working part time that I had little time for dating although my friend kept trying to fix me up.” “That is hard to believe. You are even more beautiful than you were when I first fell in love with you. Those marines at hill 881 must certainly give you a serious once over.” “If they did, I never noticed. They were too tired to fuss with a woman.” “No way. A marine or a sailor will never miss the sight of a beautiful woman, even if they never show it.” 162 I laughed and took a sip of my drink, wondering if there were implications in his statement of ‘when I first fell in love with you.’ Was he implying that he still loved me? I hadn’t noticed but patrons were beginning to arrive and a waitress asked us if we were ready for menus. She handed us the menus and recited the specials for the evening. Knowing what I wanted, I sat back observing this wondrous surprise who dropped into my life a few hours ago. What I saw was a handsome man, over six feet, with mink colored brown hair, soft misty green eyes, shoulders and arms that any woman would love to envelop her. That was the physical part. I was guessing that underneath his jacket were bulging and rippling muscles. I was sure he was not the lean smooth young man whom I loved so many years ago. Then there was that warm inviting smile which seemed to have grown warmer over the years. He was still the well-groomed gentleman that I had known so long ago. Those were the years during which I experienced a love that I was sure would last forever. As I relived the warm memory of his kisses and his hands caressing my breast, I was beginning to wonder if there u were any burning embers of love within this gorgeous man. Because I was feeling faint stirrings in my depths I warned myself. “Stay cool, Cathy.” During dinner I brought him up to date on my family doings and changes and then on the life I lived at school, m affiliation with the Columbia News and the work during those years with the Times. After dinner we took a long walk around the village, doing a little window-shopping. In the midst of our walk he asked, “Cathy, do you think you could call me Jack?” 163 “Certainly if you will allow me a couple of slips of the tongue.” “Certainly. Would you be willing to test that name calling on a real date with me this weekend?” I was almost too eager but tried to mask my response. He laughed as he watched my face. I wanted to find some excuse, just trying to play a little hard to get, but I could feel the heat rising in my cheeks. He teased me. “You always looked so radiant when you blushed. I’m glad that you’re excited about a date with me.” I tried to recover. “Johnny, I mean Jack, since you’re a student and I am gainfully employed, we need to make this Dutch treat date” “Let’s not get into that. I m old fashioned enough to take you on a real date, meaning I want to foot the bill when I invite a lady out for the evening. Besides, money has never been a problem in our family.” “Jack, you do remember my stubborn streak. Okay for this time but you keep in mind that I am my own woman. In the field of journalism I no longer take a back seat to my rivals. You may have to put up with that if we are to continue to see each other. Jack insisted on taking me home in a cab. Being totally confused about my feelings I kept hoping we could run a little test by making out in that back seat but Jack just held my hand and gently rubbed his thumb over my knuckles. At the front door, he put his arms around me but limited his lips to my forehead. “Good night, Cathy.” I felt just a tinge of disappointment. As I stripped down to don my bedtime attire, which, actually, is no attire, I stood in front of the full-length mirror to check out my body. In recent months I hadn’t paid any attention, although I knew that my physical activity kept me in good shape. 164 Looking critically, I liked what I saw, nice firm breasts, flat tummy, firm but slightly rounded hips and tall slim tapered legs. I suddenly was asking my self, “Why this sudden interest in my body?” I was aware that I was thinking sex, a subject that recently was not of importance up until this evening. I reminded myself that I was a twenty-five year old virgin and wouldn’t know what to do if Johnny invited me to bed. Never the less I spent a lot of time with nothing but sex on my mind until sleep overcame this tired woman. I was conjuring up with scenes from the romance novels I had read so many years back. The first thing I did the next morning was hustle to the library, checking out three books on the human male and female anatomy, and sexual techniques for men and women. The following days were filled with my work. I put in some extra hours and was exhausted when I fell into bed. It was then each evening that my mind turned to Johnny’s return to my life. Saturday evening Jack picked me up in time for a drink before curtain time, and then found our seats in the eighth row for the smash musical of the season, “Cabaret.” It was a joyous date as we reminisced and giggled throughout our supper at Le Fondue, a cute specialty restaurant, stuffing hot fudged strawberries into each other’s lips and wiping off the excess because of the intentional near misses that brought tears of laughter to both our eyes. . We took a walk around Times Square and had drinks in a small bar on Forty-Second Street. The years of separation seemed to fade away over the hours we spent together. Jack asked the cabbie to wait while he walked me to the door. I could hardly stand it when his lips met mine, although it 165 was tender but not overly passionate. “Pick you up at one o’clock for a little picnic tomorrow?” There was only one answer to that invitation. I was ready at twelve thirty. Jack let out a wolf whistle when I met him at the door in cream-colored shorts, cut high on my thighs and a white t-shirt. I laughed at the compliment, saying, “It promises to be very warm in Central Park. I presume that is where we are headed.” I really had heat on my mind. “Yes and I will be the envy of every guy in the meadow. Come. The cab is waiting with our blankets and food.” The meadow was apparently crowded but I don’t remember noticing anyone except Jack. His Bermuda shorts showed off his powerful thighs and calves. His biceps rippled and his t-shirt was well filled out. Being sure I would like what I saw, I urged him to shed his t-shirt to take in the rays as other men near by had done. As he doffed his shirt, I was sure I was the envy of every woman within shouting distance. He was a “drop dead’ hunk. I got all-gooey inside when he, at my request, applied sun tan lotion over my exposed body parts. I was cussing my self for not wearing a bra top instead of the t-shirt, but I did push up the bottom hem of hem of the shirt in order to get some sun and feel his hand on my tummy. I found myself hoping he might tease me with a feint of movement toward my breast or lower on my belly. We spent more time talking about our experiences during the past six years. I pressed him for info regarding his love life, and then feeling some jealousy when he spoke of Libby, his steady for a year and half while at McGill. He kept his tone neutral while he answered my question but from something he said I deduced that they had really been close and probably intimate. While I felt this pan of jealousy, I hoped he had made love to her. I wanted his 166 experience to guide me through my initiation, planning that today would be the day. In the cab on the way home, he pulled me into a cuddle nestling me against his right breast, softly smoothing down my tousled hair and lightly stroking my right arm. It felt so inviting. As we neared my apartment I asked, “Jack, do you have time to come in for a glass of wine .I can cook up a light supper later on.” “Of course. I was afraid you might not ask. I want to spend every minute I can with, you, Cathy. I am beginning to feel the love I had for you all those years ago. In fact, it may be that same love rising from the ashes/” Just then the cab pulled up at my front door, giving me a chance to gather my thoughts. When I locked the door of the apartment behind us, I said. “Jack, I’ve been having that same experience. There is no question that I could fall in love with you all over again.” He reached for me, firmly pulling my body into his arms, dropping his lips onto mine, with a tenderness that had me sighing. My blood was humming, my arms moving up his back. I felt like I was melting as I thought of those muscles taking control of me. Just the thought of it stirred me to pull him closer, my hand moving to his hair and pulling his lips so that I could ravage them. When we came up for breath, his hot lips sought that hollow behind my left ear, starting to turn me into jelly. “Oh, Jack. I wanted you so long ago and now once more.” “I want you desperately, Cathy.” “Will you make love to me? I haven’t let any man get close. I have been waiting for the right man, not ever thinking it would be you.” 167 His muffled voice reached me from someplace behind my ear. “Cathy, you keep surprising me. It is hard to believe that a worldly-wise woman like you have is still virginal. I promise to be gentle.” “I know that. Just love me and teach me how to make love with you. My making love with you seems as important as your making love to me.” Much later when I was able to control my breathing, I rolled atop him, pressing my lips to his as a special thank you. I pulled my head back saying. “. Thank you.” Jack smiled. “It was a pleasure, let me assure you. Just whistle and I’ll come running. Didn’t you feel some pain?” “Yes, a little but the glory of your love before and the pleasure for me that followed was overpowering, making me forget any pain.” I whipped up some sausage and eggs while Jack made the coffee, prepared the toast and set the table. I insisted we leave the dishes in the sink while we tuned in the Yankees game on the tube. I think we spent more time locking lips and exploring body parts than we did watching the game, although I do remember that the Yankees won. Two minutes after Jack hit the off button, he was carrying me to experience anew a lovemaking that was even more glorious than the first. During the next month I hardly saw Mickey who spent his spare moments with Julie while I spent much time with Jack. Starting the weekend after our special time, he came by Friday evenings and stayed until Monday morning. I helped him with his studies and got special understanding of the politics and economics 168 of the present world. He was taking crash summer courses in order to speed up his studies and get his degree. Meanwhile my assignments included covering meeting of the some congressional sessions and key committee meetings. I dug up some human-interest stories while riding the subway or sitting on the bench in Riverside Park, watching and talking with tourists waiting their turn to enter the statue of Liberty. I roamed the streets and visited the shop owners in the village, searching out those special stories. When in Washington, I would do the same, always looking for interesting profiles. My boss created a special spot in the weekend issues for “Profiles by CC” In late September Jack and I were nosing through the Times week end massive issue when he said, “Listen to this. Denmark and three other nations are accusing Greece of violating the terms of the European Human Rights Agreements.” He handed me the item, which I scanned quickly. In a teasing voice I asked “Jack, if I can wrangle a trip to Greece for a few weeks, would you be willing to deny yourself the company of your love slave while I try to tell the world about this?” He hugged me and said, “I will miss you terribly but this is your life. Just be sure to come back home to me.” The next morning I ambled into Fred Martin’s office just as he was having his coffee break after putting in the first three hours of his day on the phone to our people in Europe and the Middle East. He pointed to the coffee pot and a seat across from his desk. “The glint in your eyes saws you are looking for authorization to head off to some god for- saken land in turmoil. Am I right?” 169 I grinned. “Greece.” “The junta has a tight lid and a firm grip and we have long time veterans on the scene.” “Anyone covering specifically the human rights issues and resulting suffering?” “Not directly.” “We ran a story in the Sunday issue.” “The one about Denmark and others complain to the European Human Right Commission?” “It must be horrible if four nations are bringing up the charges. I think we can find a way to fill out some detail for the world to see.” He laughed. “I see. You believe that the two of you need a vacation for a few weeks where you can get yourself jailed by these bad boys?” “Boss, you are so insightful and, yes, we can find some sneaky way of getting the evidence out of the country. The question is do we do an expose considering our government’s relationship to the colonels?” “Cathy, I’m not sure about this. If you end up being considered a spy, life will become hell. Your treatment will not be pleasant. Abuse and rape and treatment worse than your brother’s.” “I don’t think that is likely and not a good enough reason for me to change my mind.” Two weeks later we landed in Athens as official’s writers and photographer for the Times. We were taken to a special room after clearing customs, where an army major handed out the rules for foreign journalists including the penalties for trying to avoid the news censors. His parting words were “The army has eyes and ears everywhere. We are serious about enforcing the rules. 170 We flew to Kavala, in northern Greece where we were a bit off center stage In country run by despots where freedom is restricted and the threat of punishment is constant, it is not difficult to find some citizens willing to thwart the intent of the rulers. Within twenty four hours had located a small firm where we could have our writing and developed pics put into microdots, our method of getting past the censors He provided us with a contact in Athens if we still had need when we were there. We had devised a simple but devious plan for getting our photographs and stories published. This special material would be published after our return First, we would photograph and write and file stories showing up the positive side of life in Greece at that time. We featured improvement in life for the farmers who had been bypassed in previous administrations. We photographed and wrote about increased building programs and published statistics on the improved economic health of the nation, all of which were true. Our boss published two of these eight stories that I filed and were approved by the censors. The real news, which we intended to publish after our return, was of the violent abuse of the individuals who for one reason or another displeased the powers that be. The photographs by Mickey were reduced to two microdots. Mickey plan to attach to the heels of his slightly dirty feet while we would be searched during our departure. The accompanying stories and identification of the photos would be in my personal diary, written in my special shorthand. Short notes would be interspersed with details of my thoughts of the wonderful views or impressive sights visited on that day 171 One afternoon Mickey was in the back room of the photography shop where his pictures were being developed prior to his choosing the ones for reducing to microdots. All of a sudden, an unmarked police car pulled up directly in front of the store. Two police in plain clothes casually got out of the vehicle and strolled to the front door. The shop owner called out to Mickey, who quick yanked the roll of film that he had just placed in the tray. He rushed to the back door into the alley behind and stuffed the wet film into his jacket pocket. He dashed to his right for about twenty yards where he found a walkway toward the street. He looked back but saw no sign of being followed. He figured the shop owner had found some way to distract the policemen. He strolled toward the next street and continued, looking into various window displays as any foreign tourist might be doing. He turned at the corner and strolled toward the street where the photography shop was located. The police car was no longer parked in front; Mickey walked into the store and was greeted by a grinning owner. “The two bullies simply had some personal film they wanted to have me develop, free of charges, of course.” Mickey told me that he could feel his muscles melting as the tension dropped from his body, in full relief. The soldiers were very vigilant, stopping us periodically, especially when we returned to Athens. Their presence was heavier here in the big city. There were two special times when soldiers decided to frisk both of us for no special reason. On one occasion, one of the pair began to search my body, enjoying him as he groped my fanny and my beasts. I made such a fuss that the other started to laugh and stopped searching Mickey. 172 He joined his buddy, wanting to get in on the action. Despite my protestations he insisted I might be hiding something in my bra, ordering me to pull up my blouse and unhook the bra. Their Greek conversation would have been complimentary if the words were spoken by husband, Jack I decided to make the most of it with not too vehement but definitely louder protests which only served to prolong their enjoyment. That was a close call because Mickey had a tiny camera perched on his chest just inside his shirt, which might have been noticed with a good search. Before either of the soldiers could get back to search Mickey, I heard a whistle shrilling and the two soldiers dashed in the direction of the whistler. We both sighed with relief. The film in that camera had two scenes, in which civilians were being tortured, one lying face up with a policeman jumping up and down on the man’s stomach. The other showed an arrestee having his throat jammed with a rag soaked in gasoline. The authorities did not discourage observers, wanting to make a point of no disobedience. One ploy I used to keep suspicion at bay was to interview some of the senior officers, telling them that I was compiling profiles of the current leaders in Greece. It was natural for each of them to puff up and get garrulous, telling me more than was wise and, of course, to inflate their contributions. I gave copies of my profiles to the major newspaper in Athens. The photos and profiles appeared within a few days. Within days of the first j publication, Mickey and I were receiving smiles from the soldiers in city center. 173 I decided to offer a profile to be sent to New York of each of the seven Colonels. Within two days I had five of them requesting times for their interviews. Despite an improved relationship with the army, we were stopped periodically by the local gendarmes. We continued to stay alert. Mickey had over two dozen pics showing victims who had suffered serious physical abuse and then released. He had shots of two men with arms broken in multiple places, sent on their way with no medical treatment, thus ending in permanent disfigurement. We had met with the Athens contact that had been referred by our first photo shop owner. Each day the film that Mickey brought in was immediately developed. The finished product and negatives were hidden beneath a cobble stone in the alley behind the store until Mickey could decide which should be transferred to microdots. I am still amazed at the risk that some people will take as citizens when the penalties can be so devastating. Some of the stories are too gruesome for me to write for publication although my journal is quite explicit. Ten days of secret exploration of the abuses produced more evidence than we would need for our expose. The real fright for me came during our last hours before departure. We spent three hours in a debriefing room, interrogated about every detail of our visit and each photograph looked at a dozen times. One soldier spent almost two hours reading and rereading my journal, continually asking me to interpret my short hand. I was in fear that, at some point, the lies I was telling might trip me up, 174 I was glad my examiner was not one of their top intelligence officers who would have been more acute and would have seen through my amateurish ways. This was the big test. I could feel the moisture escaping the pores under my arms although I believe my facial composure and smiles were disarming enough. The examiner put down the journal, seemingly satisfied that nothing therein was of concern. My personal shorthand notes of the abuses were interspersed with shorthand and some long hand notes about the progress that were evident during the last few years. He started for the door, turned and grunted something to the other two men. One, who spoke a little English, smirked and said “Clothes off.” I figured they would call in a matron to search me but they made no move to do so. I started slowly unbuttoning my blouse but the look on their happy and eager faces made me think they were enjoying a slow strip tease. I decided to play along and moved with adagio moves, just enough to tease their hunger. L I stood only with bra and panties, shoes and hose, trying for a demure appearance. The grins widened as the leaders said “Shoes and some word that I took to mean my hose.” I suddenly was feeling uncomfortable. They were obviously enjoying my discomfiture. The heat that had flushed my face earlier seemed to spread over my entire body. I stood ready for groping hands but had guessed incorrectly. Very smooth hands moved to my back to unsnap by bra and then softly and seductively slip under the elastic of my panties and moved them down over my hips. I shuddered, not knowing what to expect. Both men began a close visual inspection of my body, concentrating with their 175 fingers on my rosebuds and high on the inside of my thighs, lingering ever so slightly The leader had just moved his hands back to my breast when a shout from the other side of door interrupted him. It sounded like a question and I guessed it was something like “What the hell is taking so long?” I interpreted his sign as “Get dressed.” I was so nervous with the close call that I fumbled with my bra, then feeling his soft hands helping me. They left the room while I finished and sighed with relief. The microdot under my left breast was undiscovered. My legs felt like jelly so I sat waiting for a sign to leave. Meanwhile Mickey was in another room being stripsearched. He told me. “They had me completely naked except for my socks and were definitely looking for micro dots. At the last minutes, the headman insisted that I remove my socks. I was sure I was a goner. I sighed with relief when he told me to get dressed, having looked between my toes but not looking at the bottom of my feet where he might have discovered my microdots.” We were cleared and escorted to the departure lounge ten minutes before boarding time. When we were airborne, Mickey said.” You know, Sis, as scary as it was, there was thrill to being able to outwit your enemy. I don’t think I am ready to play the spy game but I have to admit to feeling a real thrill.” "Good for you but you better never say that to your Julie.” Jack and Julie were both at Kennedy to welcome us, wrapping us in their arms, tears flowing on four sets of cheeks.” The editor decided personally to write an introduction to a three-day series, featuring the photos with brief captions that I wrote as interpretive notes. Letters to the editors were complimentary noting that the photos make the victims come alive and, in one comment, “rose off the paper to confront me.” 176 In the third issue, the editor ran my profile of a Lieutenant Colonel whose recitations of his actions were most abhorrent to me. The photo by Mickey spoke volumes depicting the arrogance, the insolent the disdain for the common citizenry Mickey had picked up the perfect expression to amplify what I was trying to say in prose. That evening in the privacy of our bedroom, Jack said. “Today’s story, with its uncovering the heart of the junta, will put the two of you on the map and may make you targets of a sort.” 177 Chapter 9. A few months later Jack and I spent a weekend in New England enjoying the colors and cozy evenings by a roaring fire in our cabin with the additional benefit of no noise limit during our lovemaking. Holding hands as we walked and kicked at the red and bright yellow leaves, we talked of many things, like how we missed each other, the little thoughts that crossed our minds in those free moments that come even in the midst of business or turmoil. We stopped in the midst of a shower of falling leaves, caused by a brief gust of wind, kissed deeply and walked on. It was a good time to share dreams interspersed with hugs, kisses and words like: I love you.” Jack rented a car and drove Mickey, Julie and me to Coalton for a magnificent Christmas holiday. My high school friend, Di, and her husband Jimmy spent Christmas Eve with our family, even joining us at the candle light mass at eleven o’clock. Jimmy’s comment after words was “It’s sure different from the services at the African Free Baptist Church.” During the days before New Year’s Day, Jack and I found an apartment on Riverside Drive near 118th street where we could live together, saying nothing to either set of parents for the preset. It was a peaceful period. I had no long trips during the winter, mostly editing or rewriting stories for my fellow reporters calling in from the field. I attended special seminars at Bill’s request. 178 It was a warmish night considering the fact that it was February 2nd, Ground Hog day. We sat on the balcony, wrapped together with a Navajo Indian blanket, overlooking him Hudson River. Jack reached over for my left hand, put his lips to my palm and asked “Cathy, would you please say yes? I am asking you to marry me.” I was taken back for a full minute and could not respond. While not unexpected, this particular moment was indeed a surprise. I continued to find myself speechless. Jack finally asked again to which there was only one response. “Oh I will. You know that you have held my heart and my future in your hands for all these months” After long minutes, tied up in an embrace and a kiss to die for, we separated our faces but not our bodies. Jack and I talked a little about plans for a wedding shortly after he graduated. We talked about making babies, agreeing that we would like to have two children. That brought us to the issue of working outside the home and taking care of babies, not trying to resolve the problem but still wanting the babies It takes no great imagination to figure out how we spent the rest of that evening. On the 28th of March I had a call at my desk, “Hi, Cathy. Long time no see. This is Elsie.” She and I had shared experiences while I was still a student at Columbia. Elsie was now the assistant editor of the Columbia News. “I know it’s not your department but if your boss would agree I believe you would be a good person to cover a breaking story on campus.” “What can you tell me that I can take to the big boys?” 179 “It seems we are about to have some public protests. Part of it will be racial while the other seems to have the SDS stirring the pot” “I’ll call you in a bit. How do I reach you?” My boss asked “why do you think she wants you instead of a reporter from the city department?’ “I’m, guessing because we are friends and worked together. Oh I didn’t tell you she is black with roots in Harlem. She and her dad sort of introduced me to Harlem during my senior year. My guess is that she is hoping for a less biased white reporting a protest with racial overtones.” “Do you think you can be objective? Oh, hell, what’s the difference? I’ll get approval from City. Come back in ten minutes.” When I walked in, he smiled. “You’re working for City. He will be sending out one of their own, rooting around for the SDS angle. You may have to do some sharing if this is a combination event and my nose tells me it will be. After calling Elsie, I left a message for Jack saying I was on a story and having dinner with Elsie. Grabbing my coat and bag I was headed for the subway and Columbia. Elsie’s mom welcomed me with open arms. “Elsie is changing and daddy will be here in a few minutes. He called a while back. I have some California chardonnay, if you would like a drink.” I did. At dinner I received a long and lengthy description of events leading to the evolving confrontation. The shortened version is like this 180 The university had been encroaching on Harlem, buying our property and becoming a de facto landlord besides forcing out more than eight thousand persons. Plans to build a combination community center together with a university gymnasium on public land had been meeting resistance from Harlem activists but with little success. Elsie chimed in “The design of the building with limited entrance for local citizens, mostly black, while the students would have no limitations. This has an odor of Jim Crow.” “Elsie continued. “The black students decided to take up the issue now, to protest, probably with sit-ins. They know it will be tough going since the city fathers who approved the plan even over rode Mayor Lindsay’s objections to the project.” Her dad added a bit more detail to the history, handing me some back issue of his paper, which contained both stories and editorials. After her folks retired to the living room, Elsie invited me to help with the dishes so we could discuss some other issues. “There are more. Anti-Vietnam groups and the SDS, the extremely radical group, who have discovered the university’s relationship to the Institute for Defense Analysis and the resulting research being conducted for the military. They are planning a joint protest, not necessarily pleasing to the black protest who wants to focus on the gymnasium project.” After receiving answers to some question I asked Elsie if I might share this last piece about the anti-IDS protest with my colleague. “Of course. I just want you, personally, covering the Harlem side of this story for the Times.” “You got it. I’ll have Mickey on standby if you think that will help.” 181 “Oh, yes. Photos are always another way of telling a story.” In the morning I called the office to let my temporary boss, Mitchell Ross, know about the SDS activity, suggesting to him that they send a colleague ASAP. At midmorning, Fritz, my temporary colleague, found me in the coffee room where I filled him in. “This demonstration includes women from Barnard as well as the men from Columbia. A protest at the Low Library building started about an hour ago. Denied access, the group is now headed to the gymnasium sight trying to stop construction. “Don’t sit. We’re leaving. Once we arrive, you’re on your own. Since the SDS leaders have a double agenda, they are a bit over zealous.” “Meaning things might get out of hand?” “What signals are you reading from the e administration?” “So far they have on the velvet gloves. Neither the black students nor the administration wants an explosion which is a real possibility given the long period of overt racism prevalent for years.” “Thanks, Cathy. That is a great heads up.” I called Mitch after four that afternoon. “This has all the earmarks of a long and loud protest. I presume Fritz has already called in. If it’s okay with you, I’ll focus on the background of the Harlem-Columbia dispute. I have enough for a long story or maybe a two day series.” He had a dozen questions and gave me the ego ahead. I submitted my stories in time to make the Saturday issue but Mitch decide to wait until the Monday and Tuesday issues while Fritz had a story each day, including the fact that the black students 182 were occupying one section of Hamilton Hall while the whites were in a separate section. I called Mitch on Tuesday afternoon. The first thing he said “I sure hope there are no holes in the facts you have in the stories. The phones are lighting up by calls from power sources saying you have it all wrong. Others are asking for more detail. This is causing uproar. I love it but I hope you don’t have me over a barrel without knowing it.” “I assure you, boss. We’re safe. I have an impeachable source. I have just called in the story of why the black students are separating themselves. I’ll call back in thirty to see what else you want in that story.” Thirty minutes later he was saying. You’re story is great. Do you think you can get a direct quote regarding the discriminatory architecture?” “I’ll call you back. At 7:07 I called Mitch and was asked by his secretary to hold on. Three minutes later “Did you get it?” When I said I had called it in, he said. “I have a bombshell for you. Ten minutes ago Dr King was assassinated in Memphis. All hell will probably break loose in Harlem and maybe on campus. I need a story before midnight with whatever you can get.” “Roger that, boss.” I was calling from a pay phone outside the News building so I hustled into Elsie’s office. She was still there, surrounded by colleagues listening to a news flash about Dr. King. It was probably unconscious but her two black associates were standing with her on one side of the desk separated from the five white colleagues. Since few details were available, commentators started speculation and Elsie flipped the switch. For just a moment I had 183 the impression that she saw me as the enemy but she quickly masked any such feeling and walked over to me. The tears started flowing and she put her arms around me, head on my shoulder and wept. Much later .I led her to the water fountain and then to the coffee shop for a cup of tea. I asked her about her plans. “I have no idea, Cathy.” How about seeing what happens in Harlem in response to his death? I think the Times could use a personal story of one family’s reaction or the reaction of some close-knit group. If you are up to it and believe it is worthwhile, I will be happy to see that it gets published.” “I don’t know. I am so damned confused and angry. When will this stupidity come to an end? When will all people understand that all of us are the same, that color is not what makes us who we are?” I sat silently, knowing the questions wee rhetorical. A minute later she picked up the phone. “Dad, are you going to be there for a while?” A pause. “Cathy and I will grab a cab and see you soon.” A pause. “Yes, we’ll take precautions.” Two cabbies regretfully refused to take us into Harlem. A third, who was black, agreed if I would be willing to cover my face or slink down in the seat as we traveled 125th street, the central business district of Harlem. As I look back, I still am amazed to find that my friends were more fearful for me than I was for myself. I had a light kerchief covering most of my face but I wanted to observe. The streets were full, large groups conversing, some individuals gesticulating and displaying angry faces. I could imagine what the words might be. 184 Up to that time there were no signs of vandalism or rioting although I was sure that would come later, but maybe not in their own neighborhood this time. I was wrong. I noticed police blockades going up on the cross streets that led to Morningside, the location of the Columbia campus. Police were wearing riot gear. Mr. James took us into an inner office away from windows, signaling to me that my white face might attract unwanted visitors. He poured me a cup of coffee while he and Elsie retired to another room. I called Jack to tell him where I was and might not see him until much later. He understood and said. “I’ll be waiting and praying, love. Please take care. I love you.” I took out m notebook and began writing the story of my observations since I joined Elsie right up to this very minute. Pouring another cup I spent a few minutes reflecting on the events of the day and how our relationships might change as a result of this cataclysmic event. Elsie and her dad joined me. “Cathy, daddy thinks I ought to write that story. He believes the world ought to know how upstanding blacks react to this tragedy.” ‘Mr. James, I am glad you agree. I know my editor felt it would be appropriate.” “Cathy, I suggest we go home where Mrs. J is nervously awaiting us. We need to support each other in moments like this. Plan to spend the night. I believe it will be dangerous to be on the road in this part of the city later tonight.” Elsie said. “I need a little time to gather my thoughts. Some friends and extended family members might be willing to add to my thinking. “I’m willing and thank you both.” Mr. James said. “We thank you for the opportunity.” 185 We had a police escort join us as we pulled out of the parking lot and stay until we left 125th street. The crowds were thicker and obviously angrier. There were some small fires of trash on the curbside but nothing that spelled riot or vandalism. I heard myself sigh with relief as we pulled into their Elmhurst driveway. I had noticed that none of the houses on their street were showing any lights. My muscles were tensed and could have used mama’s kneading. Mrs. J included me in the hugs and showed me the towels in my bedroom and suggested a hot shower in the spare bath and that pajamas and robe would be proper dinner attire this evening. Fresh and cozy in the robe, I called Jack to update him and hear him tell me how much he missed me. He ended the call whispering a few naughty ideas that had me giggling. Elsie had dinner in her room so she could concentrate on her story and make those calls. Meanwhile, sensing a need for the James to be alone, I retired to my room to finish my own story. At ten thirty Elsie brought in some hot cocoa. “Am I still in time before they close the presses?” “Oh, yes. I have enough time to enjoy this cocoa with you before I call it in. How do you feel?” “Still angry but calmer. My hands aren’t shaking any longer. I found it therapeutic to let my feelings out and see them on paper. Cathy, I couldn’t write everything I felt because I couldn’t believe there was that much anger stored up in my psyche. It must have been accumulating for years while I continued to push it down.” Fifteen minutes later I called in her story and gave my story editor the phone number where I cold be reached. I was sure Mitch would want to talk when he saw the final copy. 186 Twenty minutes later the phone rang. Elsie said, “It’s your boss.” “Cathy. What a heartfelt and open expression and an excellent writer. We are going to run it as written except for some typo and punctuation corrections. Give her our thanks and tell her I want to meet her some time soon. Now tell me your observations.” After I gave him the gist, he said. “We have more detailed observations and later ones, so we’ll run with that copy. I would like you to write a story for the next edition in which you open to us what went through you mind and what it took for Elsie to open her thoughts. As usual, we’ll run it under your byline. I’m bushed and headed home. Hope you can sleep tonight” I did. 187 Chapter 10. The morning ride from Elmhurst to the campus was heartbreaking. The devastation in just one block at the western end of 125th street was horrendous. As we pulled a stop on one corner, I rolled down the window listening to a shop owner cursing as he was cleaning up the glass shards while his wife was sobbing while trying to help. It was just a snapshot telling the story of many other shop owners that morning after. I spent another day nosing around to see if the King shooting might have further repercussions among blacks on campus but cold pick up nothing. Elsie said “If you want to go back downtown, I’ll keep alert and call you if things change with the protestors. I ran into Jack at my old campus hangout. I could see his anger under control but barely. “Cathy, where have you been? Why haven’t you called me” I have been worried sick.” He wrapped me in his arms while we shed tears. I had no real excuse for not calling. I t would have taken only a few minutes but my focus had been so limited. We left for home where we could reconcile. Elsie called me on the 18th. “The SAS and SDS are feuding openly. There may be some major shifts and worth your while. Without identifying myself, I was accepted as just another student protestor in the middle of a shouting match when the heads of the SDS said they were adjourning with the black students to discuss some important strategy. . An agreement was reached so that the white protestors left Hamilton to the blacks. When the announcement was made shouts 188 of anger were hurled from within the crowd. “This is our chance to show solidarity with blacks.” “This is what our black brother’s want, so let’s move. “ The leaders took us the Low, Library building, where the crowd began occupying almost the entire building except the library itself. I was there in the midst of the mushrooming crowd starting to occupy three other classroom buildings. The display of hostility, the shouting and the pushing around of furniture was frightening but I wanted this story. I finally found a way to slip out and head over to Elsie’s office. While Elsie was busy with her editorial work, I strolled around the campus, intent on picking up bits and pieces of the moods of both protestors and non-participants. I heard rumblings by some that the administration was not doing enough. I heard one statement repeated often. “I support the goals of the protest but I need to get to class to complete my work.” There was talk of a counter protest. I wanted to interview and profile one or more of the black leaders so I headed for Hamilton but was stopped twenty feet in front of the doorway by a six-foot bruiser. “No whites allowed.” I pulled out my credentials explaining what I was seeking. He stepped closer and pointed me back toward the way. I had come. I later told Elsie who said. “Leave it to me. If the leaders are willing, I can set it up.” I had a second thought. “On the other hand, see if we can do a double interview, running the same story in the News and the Times. Mitch insisted that I stay on the campus until the protest ended or, at least until the gymnasium issue was resolved. In the meantime Elsie was using her influence to set up the interview. It 189 took five days but we were summoned to Hamilton Hall to meet with the chief strategist who I shall call ‘Henry’. I was aware of an ambience of suspicion in a room that held about fifteen men and women who appeared to be preparing posters and tracts for distribution. It was intimidating but not frightening. Henry introduced us to Foster, and led us to small private office. “Foster is the chairman of our committee and moderates the meetings of the inner committee and plenary sessions of any students who want to meet with us. Faster is going to read a statement, following which we will try to answer questions that we deem to be relevant.” His firm voice indicated that there would be limits to the questions. Foster read a brief statement and then handed us type copies.” “The residents of Harlem have been strongly stating their opposition to plan for this combination community buildinggymnasium for several years with no acknowledgement from the University. The design for “back door entry” for Harlemites and the limited use of the facility is purely discriminatory Furthermore; this project is being built on public land, our land. We are out of patience and intend to stay in this building until the University abandons its plans.” I asked, “Are there other issues or concerns that should be addressed?” Henry responded, “Yes. The expansionist policies by the school into Harlem and continual uprooting of the citizens is a major concern” “The discrimination against black women students must come to an end, but these matters are for another round of discussions. Right now, we have but one goal. Stop this building.” 190 My ears perked up. . “That’s the first I heard of discrimination against black women students.” “Elsie can tell you. Black women are discouraged from registering for difficult courses.” “That’s abhorrent.” “You bet. This school administration is slow to learn and resisting the coming changes. Elsie asked, “What will happen if the university stands firm?” Foster smiled and said. “I guess we will have to wait and see. We do not plan to give up.” Henry stood. “I think you have the essence of our hopes and plans.” They both shook our hands, walked with me to the door “Elsie says you are fair and honest. You have the only interview we are allowing.” Looking back to the calm I sensed during that entire meeting and my own feelings only of awe and respect, I guessed that my early friendship with a black friend as a teen had prepared me for this moment. Mitch was more than pleased with the interview and put Elsie’s name along side mine. Everything seemed at a standoff with only minor scuffles until the morning of the 26th when a group of approximately three hundred students called the ‘Moral Majority’ blockaded Low Library, allowing anyone to leave but no one to enter. That lasted three days. I was interviewing one of the leaders on the 29th when a messenger interrupted. He turned away and began spreading the word to disband. 191 My reporter’s nose got itchy. They had earlier that day easily repulsed in an attempt by some protestors to break through police lines My gut kept urging me to pry. I was up early the next morning when an avalanche of police arrived and quietly and peacefully escorted the black students from Hamilton Hall. I asked one of the older gentlemen present why he was here “To post bail if needed for any of our students although it looks like the police are not booking them, probably releasing them on their own recognizance.” I saw Elsie about ten yards away. I ran over. “Elsie, want to share the story?” She nodded I said “Then stay. There must be action at Low. I’ll try to cover that and then meet in your office later.” She agreed and I trotted away. The scene at Low was violent. I watched the police using black jacks and batons beating him resisting students. I saw y loads of bloody heads and faces being carried to nearby cars and ambulances to be carried to hospitals. My camera was shooting picture of the violent behavior as well as the mutilation of the bodies. The tally for the eviction at all the buildings, except Hamilton, was about 150 injured and over 700 arrested. Twenty minutes after my arrival I took a minute to call Mitch, briefing him on events and suggesting he find Mickey and other photographers to get here ASAP. I spent the balances of the day walking among the lesser injured that were being attended by medics before being hauled off to their imprisonment. I never did find out how they processed 700 arrestees. 192 Mickey found me, taking my camera. “I’ll have the film developed and pics delivered to your editor. It’s time to head home to Jack”. “I have to find Elsie so we can file our stories.” I found her at her desk where we wrote and I called in two stories. I got home about six thirty to be greeted by a loving husband who poured me a drink and ran a deep hot bath filled with bubbles, gently undressed me and sat with me while I slept until the water began to cool. Wrapped in a terry cloth robe, I had some chicken soup and hot bread before Jack carried me to bed. I began stirring about nine the next morning. Jack must have heard, because five minutes later I was holding a steaming cup of hot black coffee and reading the Times and staring at two of the pics. One was of an officer and a student with hatred pouring out of their eyes but their bodies posed in a defensive stance, exuding fear of each other. . Jack took the paper from my hands and decided to read aloud the two contrasting stories. I was in heaven as I submitted to a massage with my favorite body oil and Jack’s magic fingers. His treatment of me as royalty continued as he took me to the shower and personally and playfully made sure that each body part was thoroughly laved and then dried. We topped off with brunch at our favorite bistro on 96th and Broadway. I was pleased not be present two weeks later with another round of sit-ins, but delighted to hear that the university abandoned plans for the gymnasium project. My presumption was that the agreement to abandon was given to the black student sit-in participants; Otherwise, I am sure they would not have given up their public protest. 193 Jack and I settled in with lots of studying and my helping him often followed by an hour of intimacy and discussion of life plans. His goal was to graduate next January, which meant a summer of classes and study. The entire month was a blissful time of welding two souls into one and creating a foundation for marriage. Julie also had doubled up on her studies so that she could graduate in January with wedding plans set for February. My time was spent doing research and doing rewrites for reporters scattered around the nation. The politicians were busy prepping for the upcoming political party conventions. My boss suggested I get some profiles of potential candidates. He said “We have other reporters describing the events but I want you to show the personal side of this part of the campaign.” After successfully interviewing Hubert Humphrey and Eugene McCarthy, the boss said, “Robert Kennedy is heading for Los Angeles. Book yourself a flight. You have a room booked at the Ambassador where Kennedy is expected to celebrate his California Primary victory that evening. This was an especially welcome assignment. Bobbie had become my hero, the continuation of big brother JFK. I was sure that he would become our next president. At least, I hoped so. His championing the rights of the underprivileged struck a chord with this coal miner’s daughter. I booked a flight to Los Angeles to arrive at six P.M. With delays at departure and heavy freeway traffic from the airport, I made it just in the nick of time to hear his victory speech. Deeply moved by what he had to say but even more so out of admiration for his courage, I wanted to stay close and hopefully get a personal interview before he left town. 194 I was told he was headed to meet a group of supporters when his campaign aide said. “Bobbie, we need to get to the press conference first.” I had no idea where that was so I latched onto Mr. Barry, his bodyguard, who was telling Kennedy to follow him? I hung tight to Barry. For some reason Kennedy got side tracked and moved through another passage. It seemed less than a minute later that I heard a volley of shots coming from the kitchen area. Hanging onto Barry’s coat tails, so to speak, I was suddenly confronting the candidate prone on the floor and Barry moving toward a dark skinned man, striking him with a fist. Out of the corner of my eye I noticed Rosey Grier and George Plimpton moving to disarm the shooter. There was something inside me saying “Help” but Barry pushed me aside, removed his jacket to put under Kennedy’s head, making room for Ethel Kennedy to kneel by Bobbie’s side. Reading his face, I could see that he felt there was no hope for Bobbie’s life. I suddenly felt like I could not breathe. My eyes began to sting but I knew I had to hold on. This was not the moment for a professional to yield to personal feelings. A minute later I almost lost it as I witnessed a poignant moment. The bus boy was cradling Kennedy’s head in his lap as the myriad of reporters came crushing into the room Chaos was rampant but Bobbie’s staff and friends hustled the press out of the room promising a full interview once the doctor had attended to Bobbie. I stayed with the crowd of reporters, following the ambulance to the Central Receiving Hospital and later to Good Samaritan for the operations. Twenty-five hours later, with only a three-hour nap I was there to hear the announcement of his death. 195 I went back to my room where I finally gave in and let down, sobbing in private just as I had done that November day in 1963.in memory of JFK. Hours later as I lay in bed, now devoid of tears, I could not erase that scene in the kitchen. I had scene death on the battlefield, bloody bodies on the Columbia campus, torture and death in Greece but the impact here was personal. Another hero had vanished. 196 Chapter 11. The next months were filled with more interviews of key candidates for seats in the Senate and the House of Representatives. I had hoped to pull an assignment to the democratic convention in Chicago but no luck. “You’re too junior, Cathy. These are juicy assignments and the old timers are warring with each other to be present.” “Isn’t there some way I can squeeze in?” “Sorry. With so many concentrated on that potential madhouse, I need you here to cover some of the mundane.as well as to help with the rewrites.” My days were routine, providing me with time to support Jack with research for his political and economic studies. We spent a lot of time in the main library at Columbia and in the library at the Columbia School of Business. We took a weekend in October to see the colors in Vermont and New Hampshire during the days and renewing our love commitment each evening in those cozy lodges that were so welcoming in the villages. On the first evening, Jack proposed and I accepted. It was a glorious three days, a pre-wedding honeymoon. We decided to get married at the chapel in the Riverside Church without benefit of family. Inviting his mother to a wedding presented a major problem. He asked “How about your family?’ “Dad will understand and mother will be happy to see that we are no longer living “in sin.” That brought a giggle but it was our decision. We reopened the question of my career and having babies. In the middle of that discussion I raised the question that I had 197 been afraid to bring into the open. I had feared that even a discussion could bring about a major rupture in our plans for the future, but knew it was better to face it now rather than later. I said “Jack, we need to talk about my work after we are married.” He smiled “I know. I have been wondering why we both have been putting this off.” I went on. “Yes. You know the passion I have for journalism. I am doing what I dreamed of ever since we were in high school.” In an even tone, not giving anything away, he said: Remember, that it was I who tried to encourage you even when your mom thought you were dreaming too big,” I remember but how do you think that plays into our plans for a married life. You and I both grew up with traditional ideas of family life, part of which included the husband being the bread winner.” Jack laughed and that surprised me. He said. “We have been flaunting our family traditions by living together. I believe we can resolve any such problems in the future.” “How are you going to feel if I want to take an overseas assignment for a while?” “I expect it will be painful for both of us but that we will resolve it. I think we are too much in love with each other to put a crimp in the pursuit of each other’s dream.” “That sounds nice but do you think it will work? Suppose your work needs you to move to another city and I am under contract to the Times, her in the city?” He took me in his arms. “I don’t know the specific answer but I am sure our love will help us find a way to support our marriage as well as our dreams.” 198 His self-assurance was enough to melt away my fears. I was willing and would forget any worries that might threaten our future. A week later we were a married couple. That decision was accepted by all parties concerned. We did receive some flak but most of it was good hearted. In January we celebrated with graduation parties for Julie and Jack followed the next weekend by the wedding of my little brother to Julie. I had asked for leave from work for the week so that Jack and I could entertain mama, daddy and Kate. We did the entire tourist thing, taking the circle boat tour, visiting the Statue of Liberty and the Empire State Building, taking in shows on Broadway and attending the Philharmonic’s performance .of Beethoven’s Fifth. My folks spent hours at the Metropolitan Museum and walking the streets of the communities on the east side. One morning, dressed in my sweats and while I was slipping on my sneakers, mama came in, shod in her walking shoes and casual slacks and a polo asking. “How about taking a walk in the park with your mama?” Three minutes later we were trying to avoid collisions with the runners and joggers on the paths overlooking the Hudson River. I loved the fact that mama kept her in great shape. She had no trouble keeping up with me. Concentrating on our fast walking we delayed the conversation for twenty minutes when we found a vacant bench “Olay, mama, what’s on your mind? 199 She giggled. “Since you kept the wedding secret and private, I just wondered if you might let your mother in on any plans you have for making a baby. Your father and I are looking forward to spoiling a grandchild.” I laughed. “You may be interested in a grandchild but I think your fishing for news about Jack’s and my relationship isn’t you?” Mama’s face turned crimson and she burst into laughter. “Okay. You got me.” “Are you worried that Jack is letting me run with my journalism career while he takes the second seat?” “I guess that says it all, smarty pants.” “Not to worry and you can tell daddy I said so. We have a great marriage and we discussed all this before the wedding. We’ve already started talking about babies so we’re having a lot of fun practicing.” After the laughter died down, I went on “We are including my plans for working some time after a baby arrives, but no long trips and certainly not into danger zones.” Mama smiled and gave me a big hug, speaking softly in my ear. “It’s your life, not mine to arrange, but remember to keep his dreams and needs in mind. You have committed yourself to a partnership. Daddy and I have used that plan with occasional modifications that has provided for a wonderful love and a great marriage.” It was a pivotal moment although I did know that at the moment. Phyllis and Jay, Julie’s folks, Mickey’s in-laws, had the whole gang to dinner one evening. Jay cornered daddy and had 200 him talking about working the mines. I had never seen my father enthusiastic and voluble as he was with Jay. We put them on the night train to Pittsburgh, rode the Broadway local and strolled hand in hand to find the peace and quiet of our apartment. Summer of 1971 The veterans on staff no longer looked me upon as that lucky young skirt. With my contributions from Vietnam, Israel and Greece, I had gained some respect. My presence immediately after the shooting of Bobbie Kennedy had my fellow journalists giving me some respect although I knew I was not a regular member of the old boys club. Since those early days I had paid my dues on several rewrite desks researching and writing articles for the weekly magazine. I was paying my dues but I was getting antsy for a major assignment. Shortly after the publication of the ‘Pentagon Papers’, which exposed the less than transparent actions of past administrations regarding Vietnam, I went to the boss on the international desk. Looking up from his desk as I stuck my head in the door, he laughed. “Okay, antsy-pants, I think you’re ready for something. You don’t even come by to say hello until you want something” I laughed “Do you have something boss?” “A couple of ideas that may take you away from Jack for awhile but I believe you were thinking of something.” I laughed again. “Yes. Actually I was thinking of revisiting Vietnam for some human interest viewpoints about our pulling out 201 and now the revelations of Mr. Ellsberg Since there is still fighting, I thought it would be interesting .to uncover some feelings from those facing the enemy while entire units are being sent home.” “I had something else in mind. Some serious and maybe dirty politicking is going on in the Philippines. I like your idea, too. Maybe you can piggyback.” “I hope so, boss. During my moments of reverie, I think of the young men on those hills or in the forest putting them me harm’s way for their country and I do want the people to know and appreciate them.” “Let’s see what we can do.” I began to feel the quiver in my stomach. There was action and stories to be written in my near future. I could hear the excitement in my voice as I asked “When?” The phone rang. He held up his hand then putting the phone to his chest. Come back at five when we can so some planning.” then waved me off. Jack answered on the first ring “Jack, would you mind batching for two or three weeks?’ “You’re going overseas, aren’t you?” “Hopefully with your blessing.” “You always have my blessing, honey. Where are you headed? “Vietnam and the Philippines, I think.” “What’s with Vietnam? The shooting is on the decline.” “We’ll talk more tonight. I just had to share the news.” “Thank you, honey. I have a little time on my hands. Maybe I can do some digging on the Philippines. We have a lot of info given our financial ties as well as our political history. See you. I love you.” “Back to you, too.” I hung up and called Mickey. 202 When I finished explaining, he asked, “Am I included?” “I hope but I’ll call you at home when my meeting is over.” By six o’clock we had a plan. Mickey was included for his artwork with the camera saying in his photographs what I could not possibly portray as well in my prose. “Unfortunately you are not going to Vietnam. Freddie said, “The budget boss said ten days only. I think the Philippines offer more intrigue and definitely some personalities for you to profile.” I was disappointed but if it was a choice, I had to agree with Freddie’s idea. So it would be. Candidates scheduled ten days in Manila, for campaigning, including the days for major speeches for their Senate and for the mayoralty of Manila our departure date was scheduled for August twelfth. Jack had ordered Chinese take out from our favorite restaurant on Broadway, just a few blocks from our apartment. During our wine time, he told me he had a lot of info regarding Manila that had some signals of risk. “Let’s open the boxes while the chowmein is still warm. We can talk in detail after we eat.” I found myself rushing to hear Jack’s less than good news. “Slow down, kiddo. It sounds like the kind of danger that you love, not like the mortars you would have been seeing and hearing in Vietnam. You will be in the middle of real heavy political fight with ballots not bullets.t” Little did we know. In a special room at the Manila airport, two journalists from Chicago and the two of us were briefed by a member of the president’s staff whose words said “Welcome” but whose manner said “Beware.” 203 “All your dispatches will be subject to review by the government. We want to be sure that all stories are factual. This also applies to photographs. In fact no photos or negatives may be taken out of the country unless approved by our office. Any questions?” If the truth were told there would have been a lot of questions about the restrictions being made upon the visitors to this nation, but he received a small group of ‘No sirs’. As I look back, I believe there was no waking minutes during which we were without government observers. During my first interview, our guest reminded us that such might be the case since he was under constant surveillance. According to the research performed by Jack, there were three primary opponents of the Marcos political party, namely, Benigno Aquino, Jr., Jovito Salonga and Jose Diokno, all of whom were standing for re-election After we were settled into our rooms at the International Hotel, Mickey and I decided on a walk about town to get the pulse of the man on the street. We sat on a bench, watching strollers, most of who were speaking in English, one of the two official languages of the country. Three men who stopped near our seats were in a heated discussion about the coming election, one rather vehement about his concern for the popular candidates for Senate. I overheard a comment that validated more of Jack’s research. The president, Ferdinand Marcos, was conducting a strong campaign against these incumbent Senators, running for reelection. I heard a mention the name of one of the senators, Miguel Lua. The next morning I called the office of the Senator to see if he would be willing to give me an interview. The result was a meeting at four o’clock that afternoon at his home. 204 While we were not frisked by the two guards at the entrance to Lara’s home, I felt as though the watchful eyes were like x-ray machines. After introductions and the withdrawal of his servant who served coffee and some delicacies, our host was very forthcoming. “We are meeting here because it is the only place I can be sure is not bugged by either the police or the military. It isn’t that I am worried about what we discuss, and since I hope you will publish the interview. It’s just that I like to keep them guessing. For your information there are eight senatorial candidates running who oppose the policies of the current president.” “Does this bugging imply greater harm to you?” “Perhaps. I do know that I am under constant surveillance and that you, after visiting me, can expect the same from the Marcos watchdogs.” I spent almost two hours hearing first hand the fears that Marcos was planning ways to stay in office after his term expires. His parting words were “Feel free to publish everything we discussed although it may be delayed until you leave since your mail or wires will be censored. Marcos already has strong controls in place.” I kept trying to set up interviews with Salonga and Aquino but to no avail since both was campaigning around the various islands. I talked with both campaign managers and was assured that I would be granted an interview but probably not before the twentieth. In the meantime I managed to get permission to do some research in the newspaper morgues, particularly focused on Aquino. It was hitting a gold mine. I knew a great deal about this 205 ‘wonder boy’, of his accomplishments at a very young age, but I was digging for current information. There were direct quotes accusing the president of setting up a “garrison state.” He exposed the fraud of Imelda Marcos’ background and accused the president of militarizing civilian offices. He was a definite thorn in the side of the president and the current administration. I found that recent surveys pointed to him as the next president, especially since Marcos was not eligible to succeed himself. This was rich material and I was looking forward to the interview with Aquino. While the presidency was not directly at stake in the coming election, the control of the Senate by Aquino and the Liberal party would indeed frustrate any plans that Marcos had for staying in power. I kept digging for more information on those candidates for Senate, being taken with what I found out about Salonga. Here was a man of intellectual power with a Masters from Harvard and a Doctorate in Jurisprudence from Yale and an expert in international law. While I managed some solid interviews during the interim, I had a sense of putting in time, waiting for the big show. The twenty-first would be a key day. A big rally of the Liberal Party was scheduled for the Plaza Miranda. I called the Aquino office about a dozen times to see if he had returned, only to be told about six that evening that he would not be returning for several more days. Phoning the Salonga campaign I was told to call back the next day. It was possible that the interview would take place immediately after his speech at the Plaza. His campaign manager 206 suggested I stop by the office to pick up a ticket for a seat next to the platform, as a guest of the Senator. The crow began to call “Jovito. Jovito when he started down the aisle. The Senator shook my hand as he passed my seat “Ms. Cheka, I look forward to our time together.” He gave me a warm smile and moved to the platform. Most of the other candidates were already seated. The band was playing to a crowd of thousands. I could see necks craning to get a look at the candidates The fireworks display began and the crowd began oohing and aahing. All eyes were focused on the flashes and colors of the display. For no apparent reason, I happened to look down into the crowd. I glimpsed a man about fifteen or twenty feet in front of me raising his arm like a baseball pitcher and throwing something. Suddenly I heard a loud bang and was knocked from my seat and lost consciousness. I awoke in the emergency room with a doctor and two nurses hovering over me. I heard the doctor apparently addressing Mickey. “We are waiting for your sister to regain consciousness before we take her into the operating room. Oh, she is awake. Step up so she can see you.” I heard myself saying, “Damn, it hurts, Mickey.” He took my hand “I know, sis, but it is not life threatening. The pain killer will soon take hold.” I tried to ask him but the doctor interrupted “You have about fifteen or twenty pieces of shrapnel in your arm, neck, shoulders and scalp. We will be removing them in just a few minutes” I immediately put my left hand to my face to feel for pieces of steel. Mickey said “Nothing in the front of your body or face. 207 You must have been turned away from the platform at the time the grenades exploded.” I was too tired to ask further. A nurse stepped between Mickey and the gurney and slowly moved me down the hall while I gritted my teeth praying the pain to go away. On the operating table, the blissful sleep under anesthesia arrived just in the nick of time. I awoke to find Mickey asleep in an armchair next to my bed. I stirred, causing him to open his eyes. “Hi, sis Welcome back.” I slowly remembered that I was in the hospital. “What time is it?” “It’s three in the afternoon, the day after the bombing. Lie still while I call the nurse.” Forty-five minutes later with some nourishment inside I was ready to greet the world. Before I could ask Mickey said, “I talked to Jack and Julie and promised to have you call Jack ASAP. He knows you are not in danger but wants to fly out. ” “First, I need to get caught up on what happened.” “Some one threw two grenades onto the platform, killing a photographer seriously injuring all seven persons on the platform. Mr. Salonga was most seriously injured, taking a multitude of shrapnel throughout his body and suffering serious damage to the left side of his face, but he is expected to survive.” “Wow. His body must have acted as a shield to protect me since I was the next person to his right, although I was not on the platform.” “I have some action shots since I was trying for a memory of you seated next to the most important candidate on the stage. I just kept clicking away and have sold the pics to the newspaper, 208 whose photographer was killed. I wanted to give them but they insisted on buying.” “Have they any idea who threw the grenades?” They have some mystery person in custody. There is widespread suspicion of the government and loads of speculation that he was hired by administration, who in turn is claiming that he is a communist. We may never know.” “I’m tired, brother. Come back later, after you have some rest.” “Okay. I have been provided a guest room next door. The nurse will get me when you want me.” It was dusk when I awoke to see Mickey sitting next to my bed. “Hi, honey. If you feel strong enough, this might be a good time to call Jack.” Fifteen minutes later I cradled the phone with tears streaming down my cheeks, deeply moved by Jack’s concern and loving words. I called Mickey back into the room. “He is dying to fly out but I asked him to wait until we get more information from the doctor.” The nurse walked in “Sorry to interrupt, but there is a Mr. Freddie on the phone from New York.” Ten minutes later I hung up with a big grin. “He wants us to stick around for another week after I am discharged. You do the footwork under my guidance while I recuperate. He told me that the Philippine government is picking up the tab including a weekend at a beach resort. How about that? Get Jack on the phone and I’ll invite him to join us.” I could feel myself beaming. It was another four days before I was discharged from the hospital. Despite Mickey’s snooping and seven interviews that I 209 managed, nothing came very clear as to the who and why of the bombing. Jack and I, with Mickey in tow, spent a grand weekend at the beach, courtesy of the Philippine government. The day before we flew back, I was able to have five minutes with the Senator. He was unable to talk but wrote his words in response to my comments and questions. He promised to visit me if and when he was able to get stateside again. I reminded him that a call to the New York Times would bring me running since I still wanted that profile for the record. His half smile was crooked but stays with me to this day. I still see the loving look his wife bestowed on us during that visit. Poor Jack. He must have been dying for some intimacy but, of course, said nothing since my healing wounds placed restrictions on certain types of exercise. I surprised him during our two-day layover at Waikiki when I performed my sexy strip tease on our first night there, overlooking a moonlit ocean of softly lapping waves, providing an inviting rhythm for making love. New York was sweltering in the early September afternoon when we disembarked from the plane at JFK. Freddie and Bill were at the top of the ramp to welcome us home. They ushered us into the limo that Freddie had engaged to drive us to the Riverside apartment. By the time we arrived, I had been fully debriefed. They said goodbye at the door, handing me copies of the Times that included my stories, filed just before I departed Manila. I still was to write my profile on Benigno Aquino using the information I had unearthed in the newspaper morgue. I had no role in writing the later news about events in the Philippines but I followed all the events with avid interest. I was 210 disgusted to learn of the false accusations made against Aquino of ordering the bombing at the plaza and declared by Marcos as an enemy of the state. Later, I was not surprised to learn of Salonga’s pro bono work defending falsely accused political prisoners. Whatever mystical thread held me tied to him was strong and any bad news pained me. It was with great relief when I learned in 1981, after his imprisonment, that he and his wife were allowed to leave and retired to Hawaii. 211 Chapter 12. Two days later I had been welcomed by the staff and treated to some doughnuts and coffee. I answered questions about the bombing. The boss joined us for a few minutes and then invited me in for some conversation. Without any preliminaries “Did the government people confiscate all your research notes?” “No they didn’t. It was probably an oversight because of my trip to the hospital.” “I want to start a research and develop some stories that might point directly to the accusations implied in Aquinas’s charges over the years. If he is right, then Marcos is preparing to take over as some kind of dictator. I would like to run your profile of Aquino as the start of a subtle series containing facts that may show up his intent” “How do we proceed to gather the information?” “We are hiring a contractor to be our stringer, sub rosa, to feed us stories from which we might glean the facts we need.” “That may not be enough.” “Agreed. That’s where you come in. I would like you to start a detailed search of our archives in the morgue for stories, which we ran, containing info that may be helpful. If you undertake this, it will be your main task for the next several months. I say that because I need you to use the past stories and future ones that come over the wires from the news services.” “I’m in, at least for the next few months. Do you think you can get me access to some of the international think tanks, who may have their own sources?” “We’ll work on that. Great idea.” 212 “Damn it. This is exciting. Like you, I am sure that Marcos is planning a take over but it’s possible that if his plan is unveiled with facts, his hopes may be cut short or short-circuited. It’s a long chance but I’m glad you decided it was worthwhile...” “All right. I need to find you a separate office with adequate filing space than can be locked up. Maybe our computer people can help you store information in one of the electronic files. I have an idea, but that can wait.” I began my work in the morgue reading many of Marcos’s landmark speeches. I picked out key phrases that were self serving and boastful of his accomplishment. Certainly, taking phrases out of con738test, I could have written a damning speech. I picked up another strand. He had been establishing a personality cult. He was high handed in many of his dealings with businesses and other institutions but my next finding seemed to be over the top. He insisted that every school and business display his picture prominently or else be closed down. It was apparent that he had used huge amounts of government funds to overwhelm the opposition during his run for reelection in 1069. He brooked no opposition, using false information to accuse his opponents of illegal or traitorous actions. His fear of Aquino as a threat to his presidency was evident. He accused Aquino of planning the Plaza bombings to get rid of his opponents for Senate seats a major signal of his intent was revealed when he suspended the right of habeas corpus. The thread I found regarding integrating the armed forces into civilian projects was, for me, the most serious. With the military dependent on him in many ways, he would be in position 213 to take complete control. The only question in my mind was the method he would use. I followed closely the senate race in November and was delighted to see that five of the six liberal party candidates who had been on stage during the bombing were victorious. Senator Salonga received the highest number of votes as he had in the prior election. He had to be considered a threat to Marcos’ future. Freddie was pleased with the results of the research. He decided to use parts of the info to set the context for the major stories submitted by our veteran journalist now stationed in Manila. More stories in the Philippine papers were coming out regarding the activities of the communists, according to long news releases by the government’s favorite news source. Considerable focus was placed on the people of the south who were murmuring about secession. Freddie said to me. “Something is about to happen.” We were not surprised when the news broke on September rd 23 that Marcos declared martial law. In the editorial room the conversation was centered on how Marcos would use his advantage to assume full control of the government. He curtailed freedom of the press, limited certain civil rights and jailed his leading critics on trumped up charges. As we picked up background noise of the constitutional convention getting ready to report, I asked Freddie for a temporary assignment to Manila, but Freddie was resistant. “You will want to visit Salonga and maybe Aquino of which I would approve but that could be dangerous. If Marcos gets unlimited power he will use that power against his two strongest opponents and you could get 214 caught in the middle. Sorry, no way. Once is enough, especially now that you are pregnant.” He was right, of course. The convention under the strong arm of Marcos, recommended a change from bicameral to unicameral form of government thus eliminating the senate and removing from office the seven Liberals who strongly opposed him. For months I tried to get word of Salonga and Aquino, to no avail. This was the end of my assignment but I was to watch carefully the continued fate of Jovito Salonga. I could not shake that sense of being tied to this human whose splattered blood was axed with mine. It was an eerie feeling. During the next several months the bosses shuttled me between the city departments and in the international while I was hoping for a field assignment. I kept protesting that pregnant women are not to be pampered but my pleas went unheeded. Except for some early morning sickness I felt great, Diana, all seven pounds of her, was exercising her lungs at six o’clock in the morning of June 23rd. I fell back flat in the maternity ward of Columbia-Presbyterian hospital A few minutes later Jack removed his loving arms so I could take Diane into my arms for the first time. The nurse said, “She is perfect.” I let out a sigh of thanks and looked down into the face of this flushed red precious bundle. There is no way to describe the joy that moved through my being as the baby and I were enveloped gently into Jack’s arms. I felt totally at peace, particularly after being in the midst of strife and hostilities for the last six years. Mama arrived a few h hours later, ready to care for her two young ladies. She was a big help for the next several weeks, taking care of the apartment, cooking meals and cuddling the baby when I 215 gave her the opportunity. The following months were almost idyllic, changing diapers, taking Diane for strolls in Riverside Park, even feeding her at one and four in the mornings while lucky Jack learned to sleep through those hours. Watching him take charge each morning before heading for work was another joy. Mama took complete charge of all the housework and stayed for a month. We laughed as we competed for time with Diane during her waking hours. At my invitation, she walked with me as I strolled with the baby through the park. Our heart–to-hearts were precious and as usual very instructive. On September 26th, Olga, our new nanny, arrived from Coalton. She was the daughter of a member of daddy’s crew, a warm and very sharp young lady, and two years out of high school. Her love of Diane was apparent from the very first day, easing my mind about going back to work, six hours a day. I had negotiated with Freddie who although reluctant to see me back so soon, actually needed me on a rewrite desk. I walked into the office at ten the morning of the sixth. Chaos reigned as people dashed about and shouted over the voices of others. No one seemed to notice me. I moved quickly to Freddie’s office. He was on the phone, waved me to a seat. I heard him giving someone my phone extension number. Thirty seconds later he hung up “Egypt and Syria have attacked Israel, a surprise to everyone on this Jewish holiday, Yom Kippur. Egypt had the world intelligence community as well as Israel fooled.” “What do you want me working on?” “Get on your work station and start researching for all the stories and press releases from Sadat, and his Egyptian press office. It is no surprise that he has attacked but the timing is. You 216 also will be available to do rewrites and editing of stores coming in from Michelle Abrams, you’re co-worked during the Six day war.” The phone rang and Freddie waved me off. Ten minutes later I was tapped into the morgue from my station on the IBM main frame computer. I decided to go back further than suggested by Freddie. There were a several major pieces on Egypt expelling over 200,000 Soviet personnel in the summer of 1972. Digging for more I discovered that Russia had limited the sales of offensive weapons to Egypt, making the obvious deduction that the Soviets hoped to restrain Sadat from carrying out his constant threat to wipe Israel off the map or at least drive them back to the 1948 borders. There were stories from late 1972 about a major build up of the Egyptian armed forces. There were small stories of Sadat’s determination to attack with a major speech in April of this year. There were stories of a number of Arab large-scale exercises in the Sinai, usually lasting a few days. Israel obviously must have called up their reserves each time, which in retrospect seemed like a waste of time, effort and money. I was able to pick some stories from Cairo, where Sadat released information for public consumption about the increasing strength of the armed forces and his intention to attack. Two stories I found were of unrest among Egyptian students because of his inaction. I made no notes with my research, because it seemed so obvious that our top people would make the same deduction that I had. So I created a personal file in which I noted the following. “My guess is that the Israel military intelligence as well as Mossad did not believe that Egypt was capable without the direct support of the Soviets. Furthermore, a crafty Sadat’s timing cleverly misled them, if he attacked at all. The Israelis must have 217 thought that their air force could easily defeat any invasion by the Egyptians.” I filed my personal notes and started organizing the research material in a manner that Freddie could use. I delivered the file to his secretary and waved to Freddie as I left for the day. The moment I got home, Olga brought Diane for her late afternoon nursing. My breast was ready for her hungry mouth. I flipped on the TV, dialing into CNN for the latest on the war news. There was no doubt that the Sadat had truly caught the Israelis unprepared and was unstoppable. The attacks by Syria on the Golan Heights were successful, obviously because of the surprise but the Israeli resistance was fierce and progress by the attackers was not as rapid as the invaders in the Sinai. At the office, while I was busy editing stories from various sources in Israel, I was getting concerned just before quitting time on the 7th. I had no word from Michelle who was to have her stories wired directly to my attention. At three thirty I was handed a wire sent from the Israeli press office but signed on behalf of Michelle, someplace on the Golan Heights. This was a story of special bravery of a single individual, a Captain Zivka Greengold, who became respectfully known as the “Zivka Force.” Michelle wrote “He arrived in his tank unattached to any one unit and immediately joined the fight against superior Syrian forces of tanks that had penetrated our defense lines. He was known to hold off three enemy tanks, singly, until help arrived. For twenty hours we kept getting reports. Sometimes singly and sometimes working with other tanks as a unit, he arrived at skirmishes in the nick of time to turn aside a defeat. At least twice he left his own tank when knocked out of commission, found another. He continued even when burned and injured until 218 our forces regained the lost ground. He is sure to receive a special citation. Many of us were sure he could not survive as he continued to throw himself into the fray.” In a note at the bottom, she had a special note to me. “Cathy, I wish you could have been here with me in the command post, hearing all the radio reports and even seeing first hand the heroic fighting by our young men” I had stayed much too long and now was thankful I had a coat to cover up the dampness at my breast where Mother Nature insisted my baby’s milk was more than ready for release. That evening television news featured mostly stories of Egyptian success in the Sinai. We turned off the war news to pay attention to Diane and later to each other. My daily routine involved editing stories from four sources in the combat zones, including one story every two days from Michelle. On the 24th, two days before the cease-fire, I was assigned to work with our permanent reporter at the United Nations Headquarters on the eastside. Of Manhattan. The only agenda item facing the Security Council was its attempt to create a cease fire It should not have been astonished but it did amaze me that not all parties in the Council thought that a cease fire should be voted upon so quickly I listened to the wrangling at the plenary session of the Council, but had no access to the “corridor conversations” where I expected the real work was taking place. At ten o’clock on the morning of the 26th, the press was informed that a ceasefire was ordered and that Egypt and Israel were ready to accept the terms, but no word was yet heard from Syria. I thought I understood their hesitancy. 219 From the stories I had from that front, Israel had now occupied a lot of Syrian territory beyond the purple line i.e. the 1967 boundaries. I heard nothing before my four o’clock departure for my date with Diane at her dinner hour. However, the CNN evening news reported acceptance of the cease-fire by all parties. I was sure it would be months before peace agreements would take effect. 220 Chapter 13. The following morning Freddie invited me in for a cup of coffee and a serious chat, as he called it. “Cathy, we need to talk about your future. You must have given thought to the fact that any overseas assignment is pretty much out of the question, at least for the near future.” “Yes, I have, bossed and I’ve been waiting for this invitation from you.” “Any ideas floating around. Anything special you would like to do?” “A couple of ideas but nothing firm. I like doing profiles. I’ve thought about reviving the Profiles by CC column and given serious thought about concentrating on women’s concerns. I, of course, have no idea what you or other editors might have in mind.” “Well, one thing is obvious. Any of the above would provide some flexibility in scheduling, making it possible for you to be a mom and a working woman.” I laughed. “I hadn’t thought about that specifically but it probably was in my subconscious.” “Let me do some noodling with my colleagues and see which of the above might fit our plans for the near future. This will take me a couple of days. Meanwhile, come up with some specifics for your ideas.” Three days later I was back for another chat. “Cathy, we have some suggestions but let’s hear your idea.” “I ranked my ideas as follows. Women’s concerns, profiles, other features.” 221 “Well, we may have come upon a solution. Frannie Compton, editor of the New York Times Magazine would like to have you join her staff with the idea of restarting ‘Profiles by CC.” “If I had my druthers, I would like to work on women’s issues.” “No problem, according to Frannie. The two things can be meshed, she thinks. Why don’t I set up an interview for you?” “That will be fine but, Freddie; I need to remind you that my first love is the International department. While I have never said so, I had hoped that a year or so from now I might be considered for a long term assignment at some overseas location.” “Whew. I am so glad to hear you say that. I don not want to lose you permanently.” He rose, came around the desk and pulled me into a bear hug.” I surprised myself when I realized I was tense as I approached Ms. Compton’s office. She was one of he most respected journalists in New York. However, I found Frannie to be a charmer and very accepting Over the next twelve months I tried unsuccessfully to have her let me do a profile on her. In my opinion she was the living parable of the modern liberated professional woman. She took me to lunch and planned a two-hour period to initiate our working relationship in which she outlined her hopes for me over the coming year. It was the beginning of a professional and personal friendship that would last a very longtime. On the way back to the office, she asked, “Would you like to do a profile of Betty Friedan or Gloria Steinem as the kickoff for the restart of ‘Profiles by CC’?” “Wow. That would be fantastic. First Betty and followed by Gloria.” 222 “Good. My executive assistant will set up the interviews while you begin your background research. Let’s plan on the first publication to be three weeks from this weekend. That should give you time to study and complete the interviews.” “Great I’ll be ready.” “I have no doubts.” A week later I was seated in Ms. Friedan’s office. Not waiting for formal introductions, she immediately asked “Why is the New York Times interested in a personal interview now? It seems to me you’re about ten years late.” I was flabbergasted but mentally counted to ten before opening my mouth. I asked myself “Is this a play to put me on the defensive or is she just uncouth?” I responded. “The Times weekly magazine is planning on a long series dealing with women’s issue. I thought recalling the history of this wave would set a good foundation and starting with the one person who had been widely accepted as the trigger seemed reasonable.” Somewhat mollified she said, “I see. I have much to do today so let’s get with it. I presume you have done your research and have the usual basic information and my accomplishments” “I would like to quote you on several issues, first, the flagging of ERA ratification, second, how you see opponents on the abortion issue acting?” Caught up in subjects of importance to her, she waxed eloquent as she spoke of the rapidity of the state ratifications and assured me that full ratification was only months away 223 I said “You seem very certain in spite of evidence that the opposition is well situated in the remaining states yet to take a final vote.” Almost but not quite defensively she said. “I do not believe that the special interest opponents will be enough to defeat us. Perhaps the anti-position of the Mormons will keep Utah in the non-ratification column. I do not believe that the National Council of Catholic Women is that influential.” I asked “How about others like the Jewish Orthodox community, Evangelical Christians and the Roma Catholic Church. Surely they have a heavy influence and their positions are widely known.” She paused for a moment and then said in a cryptic voice “The real worry is in the southern states where the combination of the Evangelicals and traditions of the white southern women. That could mean trouble in Louisiana, but I am sure we will overcome.” On the issue of abortions her tone was almost antagonistic as she spoke of the ignorance and stupidity of the “Right to Life” proponents, dismissing them out of hand. To my question about the motivation for writing the ‘Feminine Mystique’ she became a bit more passionate than antagonistic. She answered with a question. “How would you fee; if you could not even attempt to reach your goals because you were Jewish? How would you feel if you were fired from your job, a job you really needed, just because you were pregnant?’ The questions were rhetorical. She didn’t expect me to answer. She went on “I thought being a woman should not automatically close me out of opportunities. I just got damned tired 224 of being put down because of being a woman. I needed to get those thoughts and feelings out of my system.” At that point she seemed to be closing down on the interview. I tried to get her to talk about some of her recommendations in the last chapter of the book. She snapped “Reread it.” I raised a couple of other issues including the statement recently appearing n the news that Welfare was a woman’s issue. At that point she began gathering papers on her desk, signaling the end of the interview. I walked away totally disappointed in my skills during the interview. I tried to analyze my failure but decided to let Jack help me do that. I certainly did not like her. I found her to be abrasive, displaying a sense of superiority and arrogance. Jack said to me later that it probably took those traits to drive her to the success she had achieved. I thought the profile was less than exciting to read and the accompanying articles not inspirational. Frannie did not agree and decided to go with the lot.t. “We will note on the bottom of the page that the next issue will present Gloria Steinem to be followed by stories covering women’s issues.” We did receive over a hundred letters commending our initiating a page dedicated to women’s issues with some “It’s about time.” Several writers commented that they appreciated learning about her motivation. Several readers mentioned the fact that they, too, had suffered similar experiences because of rules set up to limit their roles in business or in the professions. The following Monday afternoon I had an appointment with Ms. Steinem The atmosphere was entirely opposite from my visit with Ms.Friedan. I felt welcome when Ms. Steinem met me at her office 225 door with a warm smile and a handshake. Her first words when I was seated were “You, Ms. Chaka, are the model of what I consider to be the liberated modern woman. You’re married to a loving husband have a baby and ply your trade successfully in a man’s world. It will be interesting to see if the Times will reform itself to treat you as a true equal in the years to come.” I blushed, unable to respond until I murmured a ‘thank you.’ I couldn’t believe that she had taken time to discover something about a reporter who was coming for an interview. She also was aware of the strong male attitudes among the older staff members of the Times. “Now will you join me in a cup of coffee or tea while we chat?” When we were ready to sip our tea, she nodded and I said “We have just begun a new feature in the weekend magazine for which I carry the responsibility, Have you seen yesterday’s copy?” “No, but I understand there was a profile of Betty.” “Yes, well, it was my hope to feature you in my next publication based on some research I have done and the content of today’s conversation.” She laughed “I’m not sure I like following instead of leading Betty, but I never avoid a chance to have my point of view printed in the Times.” “I would also like to reprint your ‘Address to the Women of America’ with your permission.” “I believe that is in the public domain but I will give you written permission, just in case.” “Do you think I need permission from Esquire to excerpt from your 1962 article on choice between marriages and career?’ “My goodness. It seems like you are doing a large spread on one Gloria Steinem.” 226 “Yes and I’m sure my boss, Ms. Compton, will approve.” “You have me hooked, young woman. Any question is fair game, even the story of my own abortion.” It was three hours after my arrival that she ushered me to the door with “Good Luck.” The top left of the page contained a headline, “Sexism, Misogyny, Racism and Social Class over the complete message of that address. The top of the right hand side featured he picture and underneath the first words of her famous quote “This is no simple reform. It really is a revolution.” The top right hand side held the Profile a brief biography of her life with emphasis on the influences that brought her to her strong position on women’s freedom. I included her own words about the switch was turned on. “In 1969, I covered an abortion speak-out in a church basement in the Village I, myself, Had had an abortion in London at the age of 22. I felt what a "big click" at the speak-out, and later realized that I hand/begin my life as an active feminist until that day The[abortion is supposed to make us a bad person but I must say, I never felt that way I used to sit and try and figure out how old the child would be, trying to make myself feel guilty. But I never could For myself, I knew it was the first time I had taken responsibility for my own life. I wasn't going to let things happen 227 to me. I was going to direct my life, and therefore it felt positive. But still, I didn't tell anyone. In later years, if I’m remembered at all it will be for inventing a phrase like reproductive freedom, 'which includes the freedom to have children or not to.” The balance of the page contained short stories of her activities, some quotes and three stories including comments by opponents. The first call I had on Monday morning was from Gloria. “Thank you. You were very fair.” By the end of the day the operator reported that over two hundred calls had reached the switchboard. By Thursday there were four hundred calls and hundreds of letters, most of them complimentary with some argumentative about the facts that were reported. Of course, there were the critics who believed we should not be publishing such trash. Friday morning Frannie who had beamed and congratulated me several times popped in with a special tidbit. “I just left the editorial staff meeting where I won the vote but incurred the wrath of several of the brothers. We passed a resolution to request the publishers to review all our personnel policies to see if we were guilt of any of Gloria’s list of sins against humanism.” “Where did that come from?” “I’m afraid you and I are not very welcome currently in at least five editorial units. Their no’s were very loud.” “Did you initiate the resolution? Is that why we are in trouble?” 228 “No. Actually the real culprit is Freddie. He was aglow with compliments for your work which did not go over very well with a few our comrades.” “Don’t worry about it, but thicken your skin a bit. Jealousy always rears its head when some one is acknowledged from the outside and the inside. You should feel the blue air when one of the big boys wins a Pulitzer.” Over the next fourteen months I found my work exciting and very fulfilling and still leaving me plenty of time to nurture Diane and find the love and intimacy I had hoped for with Jack. The only cloud in the sky of our home life was Jack’s frustration with his employers. I think I missed the importance of that because of my own success. I had responsibility for an entire page in succeeding issues, using a format similar to the issue featuring Gloria Steinem. Readership kept increasing, as did the number of letters addressed to CC of Profiles by CC. Within a month, readers were sending in stories including both the successes for some women as well as the frustrations of women in the work place. We devoted one entire copy to the work of the National Women’s Political Caucus. We were inundated with mail after publishing stories of how local groups were organizing to fight economic and social discrimination against women. One of the great advantages of my work was the chance to meet women from all walks of life, rich, poor, successful or otherwise, plain or beautiful, each one of whom shaped me in one way or another. 229 Six moths into my work with Frannie, we decide to do one or more pieces on women who were successful in the business world or public arena whose careers seemed to be balanced with being a mother and/or a wife. The search was more difficult than I imagined. Of course I knew that women did not hold significant executive positions in corporate life. I thought I might find some exceptions regarding women owners or proprietors of some good-sized businesses. I spent quite a few hours in the morgue and in the library at the Business School at Columbia. It was there I uncovered the story of Radio, Inc and the very young women president and chairman, her career dating from the early 1950’. She was, truly, a woman ahead of her time. Once I had that lead, I continued the search to discover where I could find her and what she might be doing. She, Sara Sellech, was listed as the president of the Witty-Sellech Foundation, located in Palo Alto. California. I chuckled as I recognized the name to be of Slovak origin as was mine. . I placed a phone call to the foundation office. When her receptionist put her on the line, she asked, “Are you the Cathy Cheka of the Times?” “Why, yes, I am.” “I read your stuff every week. Great job. I think your work is as important as Gloria and Betty and the others. Listen to me gush. To what do I owe the pleasure of your call? ” I couldn’t help smiling to myself, being so well considered by a woman of her reputation. “Yes, I am that Cathy Cheka. Thank you for those compliments. I’m calling because I would like to do a story on you.” “On me? Why? I’m old stuff and no longer a honcho in anything but our own family foundation.” 230 “You may see it that way but my boss and I have a different perspective. Would you be willing to at least explore the possibilities with me?” “Of course, if you believe it is of value.” “I do. When would be a good date? My schedule is flexible. I can fly out any day this week.” “If next Friday is good for you, I can meet you in New York. I have a Saturday-Sunday meeting at the Waldorf.” “That would be splendid. Perhaps we could meet for dinner since you probably will not arrive earlier than three.” I get in at four, if we are on time. I can call you when I arrive if I have your number. You must be my guest, Ms. Cheka. I insist.” “Let’s not argue the point now. Here is my home number.” We spent another few minutes chatting about the conference before she said good-bye. She was at the table in the Waldorf dining room and stood as the maitre d’ escorted me. In a simple dark blue dress, with a short string of pearls that highlighted her beauty she could have been the bride who married the handsome prince thirty years ago. She embraced me as though we were old friends. “I am excited about having dinner with one of the famous journalists and well-known advocates for women’s rights. Would you join me with a cocktail?” “Yes. Thank you.” I turned to the maitre d’. “A Napa Valley white, please.” and took my seat. She was dressed formally and undoubtedly was a well-todo woman but she was as warm and informal, almost as if we were family. 231 We talked about our families and our roots as we polished off two glasses of wine each. After we ordered and were waiting for our starts, Sara asked. “Why do you want to an interview with me for the New York Times Magazine.?” “Because you are unique, in fact you stand alone among American women who operated a public corporation. I spent hours digging for examples and you are a singular personality who must be showcased as a model for the young women who are struggling to join the battle in the seventies.” “I hardly see myself that way, although I know that the business men of my time were skeptical of my leadership, requiring me to prove myself over and over again.” “I believe that is the point that I would like to bring out for our readers. I also believe that, if I read correctly, you had strong support from your brilliant husband both at work and at home.” “That was true and continues to this day. He is urging me to take the reins of a start up in Silicon Valley, working at it, even as we speak.” The waiter arrived and left. Out of the blue “Cathy, are you flexible enough to change plans and spend the weekend with me at the conference?” “I’m sure I can arrange it, but why?” “Do you know anything about the operations of charitable foundations or trusts?” “Practically nothing.” “Well, it would be a learning experience but you can meet some fascinating people, many of them rags to riches types with big hearts. There may be one or more stories for you. In addition, anything you find interesting enough this weekend to write about will certainly be a boon to us.” 232 I didn’t respond immediately and mulled over a thought while the waiter did his job. “I’d be delighted. Do you think it would be all right if I brought my husband, Jack?” “That would especially fine. David will get in from Chicago and join us about noon. The four of us can have lunch between sessions.” I called Jack, who was pleased. I confirmed with Sara. David and Jack quickly became friends despite the age difference of twenty some years, as had Sara and I. We had many opportunities to deepen the relationship during those two days. The subjects covered in the presentations and the workshops provided a real learning experience for Jack and me. Sara introduced me to a number of women who were heads of foundations, only one of which I felt fit the profile of what we were about at the Times. Jack and I agreed to fl to the coast the following weekend, the men to golf while I did an in depth interview with Sara. The phone and mail response to the article was voluminous and positive. It was the story of brilliant young women, given a few breaks early in life, with the full support of her husband and friends she moves from the position of special assistant to the president to be his replacement when he is felled with a heart attack. Overcoming the doubts of some administrative staff and foremen in the shop, she then faces the cynicism of the business world. Quote “There is no room for emotional women in the 233 executive offices or boardrooms of public corporations” or “A woman’s place is in the home.” She proves to be a creative and trustworthy leader of the board and then outside investors. It is those men and her husband who support and urge her to expand her role and influence in the communications business. I completed the article with the announcement that she will be the CEO of a new startup business in Silicon Valley. One of the things I learned about Sara was that she had found a self confidence early in her life that allowed her or even propelled her to strive for what she deemed important. I tried my best to have the readers get that point I quoted her “I owe much to a supportive dad who taught me the fundamentals of owning a business when I was thirteen years old.” Among the multitude of letters there were inquiries as to her address. Some wanted to compliment her while others were interested in investing in her new firm. Based on that feedback Frannie asked me to seek out at least two other business women to round out a three part series. Jack, Diane, Olga and I sent a four-day weekend with the Sellechs in their home in Portola Valley, south of San Francisco. Their daughter Maria, who lived nearby, came each day with her one year old, named Alexa. Maria was in her last year at Stanford. When she mentioned that fact, she saw the inquiry on my face. Laughingly she said. “Yes, Dave, whom I loved since I was four, got careless during a passionate evening, a mistake that has produced a real bundle of joy, as the saying goes.” It was on that trip that we met the two other e families whose dads had been wartime pals with 234 David, and now lived close to each other. This was the younger part of the family business, which Sara had led to a place of prominence in the communications world. There was more fruit to be picked in this valley for future articles. I learned of their two foundations hoping to alleviate some of the ignorance and pain in the world. A new business was about to be formed with two generations from three families involved. On the flight back Jack said “Dear, I want you to know that I thank God for keeping you single until we met again. You, with all your work and friends, keep filling my life with great experiences. “Life comes up with surprise when you have plans. I sometimes think it is God’s way of letting us know who is in charge.” It was a nice lazy Sunday afternoon with apparently nothing much on our minds except Diane. After brunch and a thorough reading of the papers, Jack made a fresh pot of coffee while I put Diane down for a nap. We were sitting quietly in front of the picture window overlooking a snowy scene of the park and the Hudson River, Jack broke through my reverie. “Honey, I’ve been asked to take new position with an International think tank.” “Oh, Jack that sounds exciting. I know you have been suffering with your bosses and wanting a change Tell me more.” “My research would be focused on examples of political reconciliation examples in nations and communities that had come through periods of heavy strife.” “Wow, honey, you must be excited. It sounds like a great opportunity and a move from your boss.” 235 ‘Yes and it would mean considerably more money but there are some strings.” I reached over to take his hand in mine as he continued. “There is traveling involved,” “Where and for how long? Washington?” “Some will be traveling to Washington but more overseas.” My stomach did a flip-flop. All kinds of negative images flitted across the screen of my mind. My anchor would be gone for days or weeks at a time. The next bit of the conversation proved to be even more upsetting. “Honey, there is more. We would have to be stationed in or near Tel Aviv for at least a year.” It was so unsuspected that I felt a bit woozy. And I must have gasped. Jack saw my discomfort, turned and pulled me into his arms. My tears spilled out all over his shirt while I lay on his bosom until my eyes were dry and I felt I could talk. “Sorry, Jack. That was like a bolt from the blue. I only visualized us living like this with an occasional time apart when some story drew me away as did the Philippine story. I never imagined that I might have to give up my career. In fact, I don’t want to do that. I don’t think that’s fair.” Dead silence and then, I should have recognized the slightly higher level of his tone “But it would be okay for me to pass up a chance for a satisfying career.” I bullied my way right past that “But you always knew that my career was important to me.” “Of course I knew and still an aware of how important your career means but we never talked about my career. That is a big part of my life just as yours is to you.” 236 His voice had raised an octave and I suddenly noticed the pain on Jack’s face as he rose and left the room leaving me to sulk and feel sorry for myself. I kept visualizing myself in a kitchen of our Tel Aviv apartment waiting all day for Jack to come home or waiting all week if he had to fly to the continent. I was surely feeling sorry for myself leaving no room for logic or clarity. I went to the kitchen to brew some tea while I tried to screw my head on right. “God, I know I am being self centered, but this is so damned unfair and sudden.” I wanted to go into the den where I would find Jack but I figured he should take the first step. It was a matter of pride. I went back to the sofa with a cup of tea that sat and cooled off because I forgot about it as I continued to stew. I was going to outwait him. About three hours had gone by. I was torturing myself but determined. Still no sound from Jack. I hesitate to write any words to describe the thoughts that raced through my unladylike mind at that time. Suddenly my mind did a flip-flop. I remembered my mom teaching me time after time that life wasn’t meant to be fair. A moment later a scene from my past flashed through my mind. Mama and I were sitting on a park bench above the Hudson River and her reminding me that Jack and I had entered into a partnership. With that thought, I jumped up and headed for the den. Just as I got to the doorway, I ran smack dab into Jack. We wrapped our arms around each other and spilled our tears once again. “Cathy, there is no way I want to hurt you and frustrate your dream. I can find something else here.” “No. That would not be right. It’s I who has been unrealistic. We ought to be able to work this out.” I led him to the 237 sofa, pushed him down and climbed on his lap. “I want you to be happy and pleased in your work. I once learned that a spouse happy in his or her vocation made for a joyous marriage and I do believe that.” “If I accept this position, there is no alternative to moving to Israel for a minimum of a year.” “I have a hard time seeing myself waiting in the kitchen for you to come home each niter. I probably can start writing that novel I’ve dreamed about.” “Quit fooling yourself. You always said that a novel was not your style.” “You’re right. Let’s have a bite to eat and let this percolate for a while.” Just before dawn I awoke from a confusing dream about planes, babies and a strange land. As I lay awake, my mind started to center on our conversation. A flash and then I was shaking Jack. “Jack, when I took my present assignment, I told Freddie, my old boss in the International Department that I always hoped for an overseas assignment where the Times maintained a bureau office.” “What if there are no openings in Tel Aviv?” “Let’s not get ahead of ourselves but I could always consider going to work for someone else like a competing paper or a news service, maybe an Israeli paper.” “Sounds to me like you are making all the accommodations. What kind of woman libber is that?” “A liberated woman is one who is free to make the right decision. Now if you can wait a couple of days before giving your new employer a final decision, I would be honored if you invited me to some moments of intimacy before Diane awakens.” 238 Chapter 14. I called Freddie’s office Monday at nine; His secretary set me up for a ten thirty appointment. When I stepped through the doorway, he grinned. “This must be business. You usually bust your way in when it’s just hello to your old boss. Getting antsy again?” “You’re just too damned sharp, boss.” “Why don’t you rustle up some coffee for the two of us while I make one more phone call, and then grab a seat so we can talk?” “I’ll be right back.” Three minutes later I was laying out my case. “Remember when I moved to the Features department, I said I could be back and hoped for a possible longer term assignment overseas.” “Indeed I remember. Has something happened to raise the issue at this particular time?” “Yes, smarty pants.” “So, give.” “I’d be ever so happy if you said you could use me in Israel.” “That specific? I would guess it has something to do with Jack. Okay. I have the time so let’s have the story.” I choked up as I got to the part about my selfish reaction. I finished with “I don’t want to give up my career, but I want Jack, a happy and satisfied Jack.” “What happens if we can’t meet your need?’ “I hope you can help me find something with a news service or even a competitor. Boss, I want to be a part of the Times. If there were something even at a lower salary, it would be fine. Money is not our problem.” 239 “When does Jack need to confirm his acceptance?” “Friday or earlier.” “When does he have to start? “April first.” “All right. Let’s get together tomorrow at noon. In fact, let’s do lunch.” When I met Freddie in the lobby, I was surprised to see him accompanied by Frannie. My brow furrowed as I tried to figure out the meaning. I forced myself to ask no questions until we sat down in the restaurant. I was soon let in on the reason Frannie said, “If you are assigned to any other location. I want dibs on your service.” I started to ask “does that mean?’ Freddie scowled “Let it rest until I have a martini in front of me.” I was antsy and could hardly wait for the drinks to arrive. “C’mon, Freddie. Good news or bad?” “Young people don’t have patience.” “Damned right, not when their careers and marriages are at stake.” They both laughed then took another sip of their drinks, keeping me on pins and needles. “Do you think you can learn to find your way around the Middle East, Cathy?” I almost toppled my glass of wine as I reached to give Freddie a hug. “You have a decision. Either you are furloughed for two months until your predecessor retires or you stay in your present job and let Jack batch it for two months.” “No brainer. I am not letting my handsome husband as prey for those gorgeous sabras for two months.” 240 Frannie roared. “Smart young woman we have here, Freddie.” He turned to me. “You will be pleased that your new boss is an old friend. Four months ago, we moved Mitch to head the Tel Aviv office. He speaks fluently three Middle Eastern langrage’s and wanted me to tell you to enroll yourself at Berlitz for private lessons immediately.” “Boss, how did you pull this off?” “Forget it. Let’s just say that you are one lucky woman and well deserving.” Frannie cut in. “Mitch has agreed that among your other duties, you are to be particularly alert to good stories on women’s issues from any place on the continent. Somewhere in the months to come, Mitch will want you to meet our other staff members on the continent and recruit them into look for those stories.” Freddie added “You are not officially assigned even part time to Frannie but she will be delighted with anything you might contribute to the Sunday Magazine.” I was floating on air as we rose from the table. I had accomplished more than I had hoped for. We parted in the lobby after our luncheon date. Freddie said. “I will miss your smile and laugh at those drop-in hello times, Cathy. Good luck. Just stop in before you take off.” Two weeks after our arrival in Israel neighboring Lebanon was caught up in a civil war furthering upsetting international relationships in the Middle East. Mitch called me at our new apartment. “Although you are not officially at you r starting date, I could use you. Cathy, are you 241 ready for some excitement? Did you bring a nanny or do you need some reference for a local nanny?” “Olga has come with us. All I need to do is call Jack. What’s going on?” “An incident in Lebanon seems to have kicked off fighting between the government and the PLO forces.” “Where do you want me and what am I looking for?” “The best source may be the officers of the IDF, the Israel Defense Force. I have sources in Lebanon who probably can get the action story. We need as much context as you can develop, including something about the opposing forces and what might be behind this outbreak.” Ninety minutes later I presented my credentials to the chief press officer of the IDF. “Good to have you back in Israel, Ms. Cheka. I understand you are residing here for a while.” “Yes, Ian. We’ll be here for at least a year.” “Good. Perhaps we will be working together again on occasion. Now I presume you could use some background on the events in Lebanon?” “That is my hope.” “You happen to be the first but I expect I will be inundated before the day is over. I started putting together a fact sheet, which is currently being typed. Why don’t you join me for a cup of tea while I fill you in? I’ll give you what we have and answer questions to the best of my ability.” “I’d like that.” When we were settled in, Ian began. “You are aware of the great influx of Palestinians into Lebanon as a result of the 1967 war. The camps were overcrowded and ripe for being stirred. Slowly at first then at a more rapid pace with the advent of PLO, guerillas into Lebanon, the Palestinian refuge population was being 242 militarized. It seems that their primary goal was to establish a base of operations in the southern part of Lebanon from which they could attack the northern part of our country. A byproduct of that build up was the sparking of an arms race among the various political factions that had emerged over the last five years. We can assure you that the PLO is active in the skirmishes against the Lebanese government forces. Furthermore, there is extreme pressure for Lebanon’s Muslims to overthrow the Christians and become joined to the Muslim nations. We have reason to believe that many Arab nations are supporting the PLO in this venture, including Iraq, Syria, Saudi Arabia and Egypt. With all of that power the PLO has established, a state within a state. We expect this war to go on for years.” I asked Ian “What are the implications for Israel?” “We would expect the typical sending of civilians to the border and instigating some fighting with the intent of making us look like we are into killing civilians. When the PLO is firmly established in the south, then we can expect artillery bombing, maybe some ground force incursions.” Ian’s secretary knocked and when invited brought the background papers which Ian scanned and handed to me. Guessing that I was edgy to file my story, Ian laughed. “Feel free to run, Cathy. I know about deadlines. Felicia will call you to set a dinner date at home. She and the children are doing fine.” Mitch was pleased with the piece I put together. “That will provide the context for our submission to New York. Nice going Cathy. Sorry to interrupt you’re unpacking and organizing. You start officially next Monday, rather than next month? Right?” 243 I nodded and waved as I headed for the deli to pick up dinner, managing to get home fifteen minutes before Jack. Mitch and I spent a couple of hours getting me oriented to our setup and responsibilities. At the conclusion of the formal meeting, he said “We have a working arrangement with a local publication, the Tel Aviv Times They review our stories and decided which would be suitable for their publication.” We took a break when he had a call from New York. I poured some coffee and we settle down for a discussion of my work focus on the women’s issues as part of my assignment. “Any suggestions about a starting point, Mitch?” “I have an idea. Our next-door neighbor is an active duty army nurse who has been a long time psychological out patient. She and my Priscilla have become good friends. I have heard her talk with pride about the role of women in Israeli society. As you know, the conversation might lead to some interesting places.” “I like the idea. How do I get a hold of the woman?” “I’ll call Priscilla to see if she agrees and, if so, how to go about it. I’ll let you know.” M phone rang about an hour later. “Priscilla has arranged a coffee klatch for the three of you for Wednesday morning at 10:30.” He gave me the address and directions and said, ”Gotta go.” It is interesting to see events take charge, usurping the leadership of the planner, thus moving in directions not imagined by the planner. Such was the case of that Wednesday morning coffee at Priscilla’s patio. I had hoped to discuss the place of women in Israeli society. I had a sense that the position of women might be more 244 advanced here than stateside, particularly because of women in military combat. I was in for a little surprise. “Good morning, Cathy. I’m Priscilla and this is my neighbor and friend, Bella Goldsmith.” After a few minutes of the usual preliminaries, just as I was about to ask a question, Bella asked me “Is it true that you were near the front lines in Vietnam and then with our brigades on the eastern front when we took the west bank in sixty seven?” I wasn’t prepared for the question and so I stammered a positive “y y yes, I was.’ With an intensity, that surprised me, she said, “You’re so young and should never have been allowed to see the kind of horror that ground combat displays. Weren’t you disgusted and traumatized during the slaughters of man by man?” I hesitated to see if the question was rhetorical and discovered that it was. Bella continued, “I certainly was while in a forward medical station on the Golan Heights in nineteen seventy three. The Syrians are such beasts” Her voice had raised an octave. She took a moment to inhale and went on. “I’m sorry. This may not be the reason you wanted to talk with me.” It was time for a quick decision. “If you free to talk about it, I would like to learn from someone who was closer to the battles than I.” “Do you know the term, PTSD?” “Yes, Post Traumatic Stress Disorder.” “Ever met or interacted with anyone suffering from PTSD?” “I had a limited experience with a GI in a hospital, a young man I had befriended in the war zone a few months earlier.” “Can you tell me what happened?” 245 “When we met at a later time, he recognized me but turned away and refused to talk with me. I was bewildered and felt rejected. I rationalized it as a shame about his loss of a limb. His nurse indicated it was more than that. Johnny was having flash backs and nightmares about losing a buddy.” She said “My guess is that there was even more. I can tell you from first hand experience.” Not quite sue if this was personal experience of something she observed I asked, “Is it something you can share with me?” I was suddenly aware that Priscilla was still there; fascinated with the direction that the conversation had taken I looked in her direction. “I’m okay with this if Bella doesn’t mind.” “It’s quite gory, Priss, but let me give you the short version. According to all information we had about Syrian soldiers, they had been indoctrinated to hate us. We were warned to avoid becoming POW’s because of the cruel treatment to which we would be subjected. Even that did not come close to the truth.” “The Syrians overran our base camp and took hundreds of us as prisoners for two days before our troops were able to free us. During that two day period I was raped by four male beasts that ravaged me in unimaginable ways.” She stopped to exhale then continued. I started to interrupt but she held up her hand. “The docs say it is good for me to talk about my experience, if I am in a safe place and this feels safe.” She gave me a moment to sit back. “The upshot was that I had become obsessed with the experience. Every time I saw any man in uniform, I had a flash back. Any mention of a Syrian had the same effect. I woke up two or three time every night screaming and then I was afraid to fall asleep.” 246 I hesitated but Bella properly interpreted my body language. “Ask me anything, Cathy.” “Since you were obviously impaired in a variety of ways, has time overcome some of the impairments?” “Yes, along with almost two years of therapy. I am well past the anger stage. Sleep comes more easily with very few nightmares, although when they occur, I do wake up in a sweat.” “I find myself able to concentrate but I probably will never overcome my dread at seeing men in uniform. I am happy that I will be discharged from the army next week.” I was trying to formulate another question when Bella beat me to the punch. “I am not well, emotionally, probably never to marry.” Suddenly her voice quavered and I could see she was agitated. “That is something I don’t want to talk about.” Priscilla caught the signal. “Bella, this has exhausted you and certainly shaken me. It’s almost lunchtime. I’ll prepare lunch while you get Cathy to tell you of her experience during the protests at Columbia or maybe her experience in the Philippines.” We sat silently for about two minutes. Eventually Bella asked, “Cathy, why did you go Vietnam to witness first hand the cruelty of war?” Trying to make sense of my mixed motives replied.” I found myself ambivalent about what was happening in our country. I had covered a number of protests on behalf of the student news paper and then later for the Times. I struggled with that viewpoint while our young men were putting their lives on the line” “I watched the statistics of two million students being deferred while almost two hundred thousand others were being drafted. I felt a need to see for myself, to see how our soldiers felt. 247 I wanted, as well, to know about the view point of the citizens of Vietnam.” “Do you think that your going met your need to serves others?” “I’ll probably never know what affect I had on others but I came away with a clearer picture in my mind. The service men needed our support not our criticism. Critics should have kept their pressure on government policy, but it pained me to find out that our soldiers were feeling abandoned.” “Did you have any direct contact with emotionally disturbed soldiers other than the one you told me about?” “Not really. I had a brief encounter but the young man shunned me. Shortly after that experience, I was asked to leave Vietnam and come here. It was just a few days before the start of the six day war.” Pricilla called us to lunch. Bella seemed exhausted and hardly spoke during the meal. Shortly thereafter, I excused myself with thanks to my hostess and a warm hug for Bella. She said, “I hope we have another chance to talk.” Unfortunately, that was not destined to occur. That evening Jack and I conversed late into the night on the subject of PTSD. I had come home tighter than drum, happy that Olga was there to keep Diane amused while I found release in Jack’s company. One of the wonderful things in our marriage was the way Jack encouraged me to let out my feelings. I remember that particular evening when he said “Let your tears come, dear. There is no shame in expressing who you are. Putting up a false front keeps you distant, not close to those whom you are interviewing as 248 well as those who love you. Cathy Cheka will always be the ultimate professional, no matter what.” Over the next ten months I covered a myriad of stories as assigned by Mitch while he encouraged me to find stories on my own. What I decided to do was to become a kind of roving reporter on the street and in the coffee shops. This proved to be successful. 249 Chapter 15. I filed a number of stories involving professional women who felt under utilized in their vocations and almost always discriminated against in terms of promotion or pay rates. These were anecdotal evidences highlighting the information I picked up in women’s meeting and protest rallies. The most poignant story I wrote came because of a peculiar circumstance. As I headed for a favorite café, I slipped, dropping my large handbag as I tried to break the fall. Two very powerful arms caught me from behind and helped me to steady myself. A moment later, a rather bedraggled but handsome young man was handing me my bag. I recognized his jacket as an old army jacket. “Thank you, kind man. I think you saved my life, or at least my pride.” He smiled and started to turn away. “Please let me buy you a cup of coffee to show my appreciation.” Shyly, not looking me in the face, he said. “No special thanks are necessary.” Without thinking, I reached for his hand and started for the door, but I felt his resistance. “I’m not dressed properly.” “Yes, you are. Some of the kids in there are a mess. Please come.” Silently he walked with me as I found the last booth near the kitchen entrance. I explained who I was and what I did as a roving reporter for the New York Times. He seemed specifically interested when I told him that my intent was to publish stories that highlighted special needs of the people that pointed to a need for changing public policy. When I mentioned the story of Bella at the Syrian front, I noticed that he began looking around the room. I thought he was 250 going to bolt but in a few moments he settled down and asked “Do you really write stories about seriously wounded soldiers?” I knew with that question that he wanted to talk about something that he needed to get out. “Yes, particularly if the story is something my editor and I believe needs to be heard.” I probed gently not wanting to scare him off. “Do you know any one who has an experience that should come to the attention of the public?” “I think so, a friend who is a discharged veteran just like me.” The waiter finally arrived. We ordered coffees and I asked for a plate of breakfast sweet cakes When we had been served I asked “Do you have time to stay and tell me about your friend?” Without thinking he reached for a sweet roll and said “I have lots of time if you really are interested.” He looked furtively around the room just as he had been doing every two minutes or so since we had sat down. “I’m interested enough to record this if it’s okay with you.” He nodded approval while he reached for another roll. “Well this friend was discharged from the army the same day I was, both us having lost our left arm.” He lifted his left arm so that I finally noticed that it was a prosthetic “He hasn’t been able to find job and his father threw him out of the house telling him that he was just lazy, but I know better.” He paused, looked carefully around the room before he continued. “We’re pretty good buddies and tell each other about our personal problems. He can’t seem to concentrate, which got him fired from two jobs, so he is living on the street.” “Is he receiving any help from the government?” “He has a small retirement disability monthly check but that’s only enough to get him into a boarding house. That means 251 living and eating with lots of strangers. He can’t stand that. Being in a crowd gives him the willies.” Remembering some of my research and my interview with Bella earlier, I tried to see what might have been behind his dread of living and eating with strangers. “What did your friend do in the military?” Forgetting his role as friend, he replied “I was in the infantry in the desert; taken prisoner during the first day. The Egyptians over ran our lines that first day.” Softly, I asked, “Can you talk about it?” His body seemed to shudder but he hunched his shoulders and started. “It was terrible. We were crowded into fenced off area with not much elbowroom. The din of the conversation was constant as well as the sound of battle. Forget privacy. The guards patrolled on high platforms looking down into the open air prison, trying to ensure that we stayed in our places.” “The rice was terrible, set in large cauldrons just inside of the six gates. We had to use our hands to dish out the food onto our dirty and rusty trays.” “As you would expect, in the desert, the temperature was unbearable and the humid near zero. We never had much water, just enough to drink, barely enough to keep us hydrated but certainly not enough to wash out our trays. I developed a serious case of dysentery. When I cut my hand on the barbed wire fence, I incurred an infection but, of course, received no medical care.” “It must have been horrible.” Suddenly remembering that he was supposed to be talking about a friend, he let out a hollow laugh. Oh, hell, I’m talking about me, a washed up university graduate engineer, afraid of crowds, a guy who can’t concentrate and is afraid of his own shadow.” 252 Looking around, noticing that the café was more crowded, he stood “Gotta get out of here.” I threw down some bills and hurried to follow him. I lost him in the crowd for a moment then noticed him walking at high speed toward the park. I finally spied him sitting on a park bench and joined him. I sat and put my hand on his shoulder. “Are you all right?” “I will be in a few minutes. This is the kind of thing that keeps happening to me which is why I never go into restaurants or any other places with groups of people.” I decided to probe gently. “Have you tried to get some help to deal with your phobia? By the way, I don’t know your name.” “My name is Levi, but promises me that you will not use my name in the story.” “I promise, but what is your full name? Mine is Cathy Cheka.” “Levi Moishe. I tried once but the clinic was crowded and the person who interviewed me said he didn’t think. I qualified. I don’t know what else to do.” “How do you usually spend your days?” “I do different things. I wander around, for a while, stop and read one of the paperbacks I found in someone’s trash. I will go into a library if it’s early when few people are there. Often I lie under a tree in this park and watch the sky, working hard to remember my young days and shutting out images of the desert.” “What do you eat and when?” “I usually have some fruit in the morning and a hamburger in the afternoon. Sometimes I buy a frozen dinner and warm it up over an open fir near the place I sleep.” “Where is that, Levi?” 253 “That’s secret. I can’t say” He was looking around again. “I have to go, Cathy. If you publish the story, let me know. You can find me near here most afternoons.” He stood and rushed off as though he wanted to escape.” The following morning I arrived early at the IDF press office hoping to catch Ian before he was too busy and I lucked out. “Cathy. Have some coffee and kolachi, a special home made pastry, fresh from our oven at home.” While we enjoyed the food, I gave Ian a brief of my experience with Levi, then said “ I am about to publish this as a human interest story uncovered by a roving reporter but it might be seen as an indictment of the government, which I would like to avoid or at least soften.” “I appreciate that, Cathy and I would not want you to change any facts, but I hear your request. How much of a hurry?” “Nor real big rush. It is not a time related story, but I don’t want to let too much time go by.” “I plan to have you talk to some one within forty-eight hours. Is that satisfactory?” “Absolutely. In the meantime, I hope someone will be available to help Levi, personally within a short time.” “You can rely on my promise.” Three days later I filed my story with a separate story from the government admitting that some veterans have not received the full care due them, urging those veterans to call a certain number. A highly placed official in the administration admitted that the government had not really comprehended the impact of the traumatic stress suffered by the returned prisoners of war. 254 The story also noted that the government also planned a number of other ways to reach those veterans with special needs who had been overlooked. The following day I found Levi sitting on the bench we shared a few days ago. I gave him a copy of my story. He grinned “You did it. I was sure you would.” We chatted a bit. I convinced Levi to let me take him to the address of a specialist referred by Ian. A week later, Levi found me at the café to tell me that he was being tested and planned to accept whatever help they could offer. I noticed he was dressed a little more conventionally. Teasingly I asked about that. “I got the guts to go home last night to tell my folks all about the illness and the start of treatment. They had read the article released by the government about dropping the ball. We must have been up until three or so this morning, talking, apologizing, crying and laughing.” “I had a long shower, bacon and eggs for breakfast and some clean clothes to wear.” He hugged me and invited me to have coffee from a street vendor. “I am not yet ready for crowded cafes. By the way, Max, my therapist, says he would like to meet you.” “That would be good. Ay idea why he wants to meet me?” “No, but he said I could bring you any afternoon after four thirty. Is today a good day?” “No, but tomorrow would be great.” “Good afternoon, Levi, and you must be Levi’s Cathy. Welcome.” 255 He took my hand in his and led us to a comfortable seating area “Thank you for coming.” “No thanks are necessary” “Let me explain. First, I had to meet the woman who single handedly accomplished what some of us have spent months try but with little success. Secondly, I have an idea that I would like to discuss with you.” “Some times a friend in the right place is the key to getting things done. I do have a great connection to the military.” “Yes, but not all such friends move with dispatch to help the marginalized of the society.” I nodded and waited for him to go on. “There will continue to be veterans who will not respond to the government’s invitation. For a number of reasons, there are veterans who no longer trust the government to do what is right.” “I would like to try something to help. Several of my colleagues would like to reach those reluctant veterans.” “What do you think I can do to help?” “Well, Levi is a little less loath to meet groups of people. He asked me what might be done for those homeless veterans who sleep in their secret place every night. He is sure that some, if not all, have problems similar to his.” “I can buy that.” Levi spoke up. “Max says he and his colleagues would be willing to lead some group discussions that might help my friends.” “I’m still confused. You think I can help but I can’t envision any story that would help “ Max said “Levi thinks that if you went to the camp with him and told some of the guys what you did to help him and are willing to help any others, if they so choose. He believes that 256 some of them may say they want help.be willing. If there is some positive response I would be glad to hold some group sessions wherever it pleased them to meet.” I turned to Levi. “Why have me come instead of Max to go with you.” “Because they all know what you have done already with tasking the government. Word has spread among the vets. I think they will listen to you. Maybe it won't work but I am betting it will.” “Levi, have you talked with any of them about this?” “I talked with two of them who told me they would not go to sign up but did not turn me down about some one visiting them on their own home ground.” Max interrupted. “I think it’s worthwhile.” Without any further hesitation I said “Okay. I’m willing but I believe that if you are with me Max, it might move more quickly. There may be questions I cannot answer. You don’t have to be introduced until the moment is right.” We drove over near the area, got out of Max’s car and walked to the camp just as the sun set that evening. We walked to the area where Levi had his cot and three orange crates holding his worldly possessions. Levi walked over to start a discussion with three fellows and was soon joined by a half dozen others. Max and I stood well out on the rim of the encampment. Fifteen minutes later Levi invited me to join their group. Each of the nine took time to greet me individually and introduce them, first name only. I told them about my relationship with the military and how I helped Levi. Foxy, an obvious leader asked me some questions and told me they were up to snuff on my contributions. “Some of 257 us are reluctant for various reasons to enter into a military program even if it may be helpful. Levi must have told you.” “He did and I have an alternate suggestion. The gentleman with me is a therapist, not military. He and some civilian colleagues were moved with my story. He is Levi’s therapist. He and the others would be willing, if invited, to meet for some group discussions with any of you who are willing.” “Where would such meetings is held?” I saw an opening. “Would you like to meet him and ask him that question or any others? Several shook their heads affirmatively. I turned and waved to Max, who ambled over? I stepped back after introducing Max to the group. There were questions from at least six of the group dung the next twenty minutes. The session ended with Ma agreeing to return the following Monday at sunset. During the next three weeks I spent hours learning more about PTSD. I sought professional help of the Israeli military psychiatric staff but I found hard evidence of the pain through the discussions with veterans whom I met as a result of help from Levi. They had granted me the right to sit in on some of the group discussions and several gave me private interviews to write human interest stories as long as I did not use their name. Over the following months I found out from Mac that there were six such groups meeting on a regular basis around the city, with as few as three and as many as fifteen in a group. Max was already in touch with some therapists in other population centers around the country. 258 The articles I wrote based on these studies and personal interviews received high praise from Mitch and Frannie, the editor, at the weekend magazine. We also received fan letters from readers of the Jerusalem Times, another of our affiliates this one with nationwide distribution. I had a letter from Frannie telling me that the Times was undertaking crusade on the subject of our servicemen who were suffering the same fate. During those months, Mitch asked me to spend more time writing for Frannie on the subject of women’s issues in Israel. I decided to call my old friend Bella who might give me a good lead. She invited me to a coffee klatch two days hence, promising to have at least two articulate spokeswomen on the subject. Elna Klein was a thirty-something associate professor of political studies at Hebrew University. Magda Kotch was beautiful blond, former model, well known across the nation because of her television exposure. I swear half of the morning was spent trying to get one to sit back while the other spoke, both avid about their positions at the forefront as spokespersons for women’s liberation. They both ranted about the myth of women having equality either in public life or in family life. It was a great morning but ended up with follow up of private conversations to learn the rich material that both had to offer for good journalism. I met Elna after her classes that Thursday afternoon. She invited me to her office, met me at the door and hung out a ‘Don’t Disturb’ sign and locked the door after we entered. 259 After pouring tea for the two of us, Elna opened the conversation with” Despite the ranting you heard the other day, I do not hate men. I am married to a strong man, a top business executive who is very supportive and implements a personnel policy that exemplifies what I would call ‘enlightened.’ I responded “But your research points in another direction. Am I right?” “Definitely. Our history actually parallels that of your own in the states. I have been studying the status of women in a number of countries for the last several years, more so than in the states. Here, we have a lot of rhetoric about equality of women. We actually suck.” I was busy scribbling in my notebook “What kind of figures do you have to substantiate that statement?” “I like you, Cathy. Right to the point.” I waited as she shuffled through her notes. “Case in point is the following. Even after all these years we represent 6.7 per cent of the membership in our governing body, the Knesset.” I waited. “Since our founding only one woman has served as a prime minister, and only five others as ministers of special departments. Actually, only there were only three, because two of them were ministers without portfolio.” “How about outside of the national government?” “Only one woman mayor to date but real progress in the national judiciary. The other areas of progress have been in the leadership of the unions and in civil service, where most of the employees are women.” “Why do you think there is so little change, especially in light of the place of women in the military?” “Now you are asking for an opinion, not facts.” 260 “Yes, I know, but anyone who has studied this subject probably has a better idea than I would have.” “All right, a couple of ideas. First, so many of our leaders are from European countries where this has been the tradition. Second, much of the political power is lodged in the political parties, which in our system gives more power than it should to the small religious parties which in most cases allows no leadership roles by women.” We spent another hour or so in which I pummeled her with questions, most of which she was able to answer. “Thank you, Elna. I certainly learned more than I expected. I have enough material for a series” “You are more than welcome and you may quote me. I am happy to have my name in print in relationship to any women issues. Now I am parched. “She pulled open a cabinet door and displayed an array of bottles. I chose a dry sherry while Elna slopped large vodka into a drinking glass. Two days later Magda was waiting for me at the bar in the Hilton Hotel, nursing a pale beer in a tall slim glass. It was four thirty and the taproom was almost empty, the happy hour at least an hour later. She rose to greet me with a light hug, taking a seat across the table in the booth. “What we discuss here today is nobody’s business unless we choose otherwise.” I ordered a sparkling water, the two of us getting to learn a little of each other’s background as we waited for the drinks to be served. I was aware that her back was open to the public view while I faced anyone who might approach. She laughed when I noticed. “People are less likely to approach me from the back since they can not catch my eye and aware that I may not want to be disturbed.” 261 I smiled and nodded agreement. Magda plunged right in. “I adore your feminist spokeswomen including Betty Friedan and Gloria Steinem, especially Gloria. I have read everything that Betty wrote and as for Gloria, I have read not only her writings but also every speech that has been recorded. I have a slew of newspaper clippings in which she is quoted.” “Magda, I’m impressed. You probably know more about them than I do.” She smiled. “Yes, I am a big fan of all those women who put themselves on the line for furthering the rights of all women.” “Magda, tell me about your goals and what you have been doing.” “Above all, I am taking advantage of my popularity to press for my agenda. I have been making speeches when requested by women’s groups and have been trying to gather a few outstanding women in order to organize women in labor unions. In fact, I would like to form a women’s union similar to the one that Gloria and Betty worked on together, in spite of their differences. I think it is called a Coalition for Labor Union Women.” “Why union women?” I guess thee are two reasons. First, my mother said that in her time, women always got the short shrift because of lack of representation at the bargaining table. Second, now that some gains have been made, it seems the softest place to attack for swift movement in the advancement of women’s rights.” “I am impressed, Magda, with your grasp of the weak spot in the area of resistance to your goals.” 262 “Thank you. I must admit that all of this is new to me, but I have spent hours studying the work of Gloria and owe most of my thinking to that study” “You ought to fly to the states to meet her.” “I would like to do that but I feel like a country bumpkin compared to her.” “That is silly. I am sure she would welcome a visit. In fact, if you want to do that, I am sure I can set up an introduction and even a date for you.” “You would do that for me? You hardly know me.” “I have done some reading about you as I prepared for this interview and my office has prepped me with clippings of your professional career. I was impressed with your choice of no longer modeling for products that you consider to demean women.” “I am pleased to have made that change and thank goodness I am in demand for many other products.” “What brought about the change? Your early career was in direct contrast.” “You’re right. I had this foolish dream as a youngster and sacrificed a lot to attain my goal. I wanted to be popular, famous and sought after by men who could afford to entertain me in fancy places.” “You certainly achieved all that according to the press coverage of your life.” “Yes, and I paid the price. Almost without exception, each of my dates wanted to sleep with me and brag about it. Two of them did, the only two. For years afterwards I found myself resisting dates, except for the demands to be seen in public with famous men. Many of those experiences were so demeaning, leading me to consider giving up my career.” 263 “What happened?” “My agent, who was avidly pursuing opportunities for women clients, took me to lunch one day. It was there when she said among other things “Magda, what I am about to say may cost both of us some income, but I think you’re a big enough name in the industry to make your own demands. We spent three hours at the lunch table strategizing. She was right. I am happy with my career and now an avid pursuer of women’s rights to equality.” “Magda, you have given me material enough for a great feature. How much of this may I print?” She laughed. “As much as you want. Just be sure. I get those clippings from the New York Times.” “Okay. Now, are you seriously considering a trip to the states to visit with some of the leading proponents of women’s rights?” “I’m not sure.” “All right. Take your time. You have my business card. I can assure you that I will introduce you to Gloria and others and help ease the way.” “I really want to do it and I can afford it.” “Good. It is always possible that if you do make the trip then you might be able to invite one or more of those women to make a trip to Israel.” Magda rose. “I have a shoot in an hour and must rush.” She clasped me warmly for a long moment and planted a kiss on both cheeks. 264 265 Chapter 16. Today was Thanksgiving Day in the states. Together Jack and I prepared our version of the traditional meal, with a roasted chicken instead of turkey, plenty of bread stuffing, mashed potatoes, gravy, yams, green beans, and cranberry sauce Late that evening after Diane was asleep and Olga was out on a date, Jack and I lay on the chaise lounge overlooking the soft evening that had settled over the Mediterranean. I snuggled my head into his shoulder. “Jack, I’m getting homesick.” “That is a surprise.” “It is to me, too. I always thought about living overseas, possibly running a station for the times, but this feeling seems to have snuck up on me.” “Would you like to visit your family for Christmas? I can take off for three weeks. We can pick up Mickey and Julie, go to Coalton.” I was suddenly filled with hope.” That would be great. Maybe a visit will be enough to help. Do you mean it?” He ignored he question and asked “Do you think you could spend a couple of days with my folks this year? I keep hoping you and mom could reconcile.” “I’d be willing to try if your mom is okay with that. Your dad and I do well together.” “That’s swelling." I’ll start setting that up. Now let’s talk about another important factor. Starting January first, I have the option of signing up for an additional year here, a year in Southeast Asia or a two year stint in the States, what do you 266 think? I had figured on our staying here since you seemed to be doing so well.” I started to giggle, hardly able to talk. Finally I could say “Jack, when I snuggled my head earlier, I had hoped to introduce another subject. How would you like to become a daddy for a second time?” He sat up almost dumping me off the chaise. “What a marvelous idea? We need to celebrate.” Since champagne was out of the question for a hope-to-be expectant mom, I reached over to start unbuttoning his shirt as his hands found the zipper on my skirt. Much later with the moon light streaming in through the balcony door, we lay in each other’s arms laughing and planning a boy’s name. In the midst of the game, I reached over and put my index finger on his lips. “Jack, I am ready for a long hiatus, ready to be full time mom. What do you think?” “That, Cathy, is purely your decision. I feel we have a great marriage, at no time limited by your calling.” “Thank you, dear. For me, there can be no greater compliment. I do love you and feel so loved. I will talk with Mitch tomorrow morning and call Freddie later in the day. I have a profile that I would love to write before w we leave.” “It will take a while to get organized so you have time to finish up for Mitch and do your profile. Have you arranged for an interview?” “Not yet. It may take some effort. This woman is a might busy with the fighting going on again.” “Who is it?” “I have my eyes set on the Prime Minister, Golda Meir, who knows firsthand what it means to be thwarted by the bias against women.” 267 Jack smiled. “Knowing you, dear, I am sure you will find a way. The Prime Minister was standing as I entered the room. I was surprised at the plain and simple business like office, although it was large. Ms. Golda Meir walked toward me with both hands outstretched to receive her guest. “Welcome, Ms. Cheka I am delighted to have a visit with you, brief as it must be, unfortunately.” Her smile was warm and welcoming and immediately melted my tension. “I am so pleased you were willing to fit me in.” “Please join me at the side table for a cup of tea. My secretary says this is not a formal interview” She laughed “I am not in my formal clothes since I was told not to worry about a photographer being present. It sounds so mysterious.” I smiled. “I would like an informal snap, if you will permit your body guard to take a picture when we are finished.” “You may count on that, but please unveil the secret.” “You may or not know that one of my main focal points has been the role of women in the work place. I am trying to be a strong advocate for women’s freedom, particularly to break down the male bias against women in business and in public life.” “I see.” Golda poured and waited for me to take a sip. “I hope that you are willing to share a few stories of the times you faced that bias in your career.” “My, my. That is a surprise. When I first saw your request, I thought it might be the usual journalist type of interview. I do few interviews in the midst of the tensions that fill my days. I did, however, know of your reputation and the special things you 268 achieved on behalf of our veterans. I felt this would be a chance to thank you.” “That is kind of you. Thanks are not necessary.” Golda looked at her watch and said. “All right. I have had y struggles as a woman, particularly with our religious parties. If you know our political set up, they have an impact well beyond their numbers within the population. In fact, not the most significant but certainly the one I took personally was losing by two votes cast against me by a religious party in my run to be the mayor of Tel Aviv. It was just because I was a woman.” “That loss caused me to add another layer of thickness to my skin and sharpen my political skills so that at no time subsequent would I find myself dependent on the religious party vote.” “I let down my guard because I thought the early contributions I had made to usher us into statehood was enough to overcome such bias.” I urged her to give me some other specifics. But a knock on the door meant we had only another minute or two. She rose while saying.” I will write you a long note with a few additional comments. “ She waved to her body guard who took a snap shot. Golda hugged me and whispered “Thank you for your contribution and fair manner of reporting on Israeli events.” She was off and running, leaving me behind and slightly bewildered. Two days later I received her letter with a half dozen examples of her struggles to achieve freedom for her people as well as for herself. I was particularly moved by her success in the forties, raising millions in order to provide the funds to buy 269 weapons for the battles that were to come as Israel strove to become a nation. The reception I received at the Times upon my arrival was exceeded only with the welcome in Coalton. My usually reserved daddy had invited the families of his crew in the mine as well as his supervisor for a gathering at the church social hall. I think he spent the entire evening shedding tears of joy. My Aunt Kate had a special announcement. “Friends, it is a pleasure to announce that our little Cathy has just been nominated for a Pulitzer Prize for her series on Post Traumatic Stress Disorder. The Times also ran a story of her efforts with the Israeli military to make sure no soldier who was a victim of PTSD would be overlooked by the establishment.” Shouts of joy and congratulations erupted with calls for a speech to which I responded with a few words of thanks for the help I had received while growing up in Coalton. 270 271 Part 2. Chapter 17. It was several months since we had moved back into our Riverside apartment. It was late April, one of the two finest months in Manhattan. A soft westerly breeze was wafting through the French door leading in from the balcony. Olga was walking with baby Diane on the Riverside park path just opposite our apartment. They were due back in five minutes or so. It had been wonderful to be nominated for the Pulitzer but the award went in another direction. It took a number of attempts and a lot of fun before the right combination produced life in my womb. Having decided to work on my current story, I walked to the desktop computer, my marvelous new plaything, and bent down to hit the power button. I felt a sharp twitch just below my navel. I moved to the sofa and almost fell into a prone position as another sharp pain sent my body shuddering. “Mommy”, Diane was calling as Olga opened the door. Unable to respond, I lay quietly as Diane rushed to the kitchen and Olga entered the living room. My face must have been contorted into some horrible shape because Olga cried out “Cathy, what is wrong?” I squeezed out a “baby, something wrong.” She dashed for the phone and dialed my OB. Diane entered at that moment so Olga swooped her up and I could hear her saying “Mommy is not feeling well.” Another lighter pain hit me and I gritted my teeth to stop a cry that would have sent Diane into a panic. I became aware that I was bleeding rather heavily but was beginning to ease off. Finally a medic arrived followed closely by my OB. The medic fetched some towels as Doc Barton started the exam and then used the towel to clean up the blood. 272 The medic placed a thermometer under my tongue and took my pulse reading while Doc continued. When he began to put the blood pressure cuff on my arm, he asked “How are you feeling, Cathy?” “Drained and tired.” “Any pain?” “Not anymore. I had some initial pain but that eased off.” “You realize that you just aborted the baby” “I guessed that.” “I don’t think you are in any danger, but we will take you to the hospital for some tests and a blood transfusion. I expect that you will be ready to come home tomorrow evening.” I started to say “Jack” when the door opened and Jack rushed in. Olga had obviously called him in the meantime. He walked to the sofa and took my right hand in his, not saying a word but sending his love to my heart, nevertheless Fifteen minutes later I was saying good night to a sobbing Diane and a quiet but adoring Jack who was holding her in his arms. He walked her out to the balcony while they put me on a gurney for the ride down the elevator and out to the ambulance. I chuckled as I became aware of the backed up traffic and the few impatient drivers honking horns. Amazingly, I felt quite relaxed knowing that Jack would meet me at the hospital shortly, but that was not to last. My thoughts were suddenly brought to bear on the son that we had both wanted and hoped for. By the time I was settled into the room, I was in a funk. Jack and I had such dreams for a son to expand our family. We had spent hours chatting, discussing names, sure that it would be a boy. I tossed and turned but finally succumbed to the sedative. Two hours later I awakened to find my hand being held in Jack’s warm palm. His warm smile lifted my spirits, signaling me that I was not alone facing 273 the big disappointment. My mind moved away from thoughts of the loss to focus on the man who was my love and my lifeline. “It is so special to see and feel you so close, Jack. You seem pretty relaxed for a would-be daddy who has just received bad news.” “I just received the good news that you will be fine. The doctor and I discussed the options available to you and probably will recommend taking a medication to complete the abortion rather than a D&C. D&C is the best way to shorten the duration and avoid maximum pain. He thought it was a good idea for the two of us to talk before he came for a formal consultation.” “Are their any accompanying risks?” “Doc says there is always some risk of damaging the uterus or the cervix if you opt for D&C.” “How about having babies in the future?’ “Doc says that in his opinion the medication route takes longer and is more painful but is less risky.” “I think I can take the pain if the chances are greater for another pregnancy.” “I guessed that would be your decision. I love you, doll.” His infectious grin was followed with my “Show me with your lips, big boy.” I had plenty of time to play with Diane, setting up blocks, reading stories and walking in the park as I slowly regained my strength. When I yielded Diane to the loving care of Olga, I got into some serious reading of the financial and political news .I began to walk over to the campus and started to do some research in the library of the Columbia business school, a fantastic resource. One evening after dinner, I asked to be excused so that I could finish some research that I had begun earlier in the week. Olga brought the baby to say good night and I absent-mindedly gave Diane a perfunctory 274 kiss. As Olga turned, Diane started to cry, wanting mommy to read a story. I responded immediately and read my growing young girl to sleep. When I returned, I found Jack looking over the scattering of papers and books that I had checked out of the library. He grinned, “How soon are you planning to get back to work?” Sheepishly, I said. “I thought tonight would be a good time to talk about it.” He teased me with “I’ll bet.” “Really. I planned to get you into a good mood and then sneak in the idea.” “Honey, I like the idea of getting me in a good mood but there is no need to be sneaky. I guessed, probably two weeks ago, that the work bug was getting to you. So, I’m ready to talk whenever you are.” I took his hand and led him to the sofa, where I sat and coaxed him into lying down with his head in my lap. “First, I need to ask. Are we still planning to wait until next year before attempting another pregnancy or do you wanted to wait the minimum six months as Doc suggested?” “I thought we agreed to give us some margin, limiting the risk of another miscarriage.” “We did but maybe we should reconsider. Doc says six months is really adequate.” “I’d like to play it by ear. Does it make a difference to your thinking?” “I think so. One of the questions that will arise in the personnel department is how long a contract. If we are unsure, then I would like to suggest a contract as an independent investigative reporter rather than as a full time employee.” “How would that work?” “I have no real understanding but I believe I can work out something with Frannie or with Bill, since my work should be domestic 275 rather than international. Freddie would jump at the chance if I were willing to travel.” “That sounds like it gives you more freedom. You could work out some remuneration based on a contracted story along with some expense funds in order to facilitate your investigations. Do you have some ideas for a beginning story?” “I have one noodling around in my brain. It is a departure from the past but I think it is important and one I might sell to Bill.” “Care to share or is it too early?” “Nothing is ever too early to discuss with you. I always appreciate your idea when it comes to the way my mind works.” “All right, I’m all ears.” “At some point during my undergrad years at Barnard, I recall the words but not the one who spoke them. I quote ‘For every problem we solve we create seven more.’ Those words have a way of returning the level of my conscious mind every once in a while. The more reading I have been doing of the financial policies urged by the administration on the congress, the more concerned I get.” “I agree with your assessment that you are moving far a field with this focus, but I see no reason why you should not pursue it, if you can interest the Times. You certainly have the analytic mind for this pursuit.” I leaned over and bussed him on he lips. “You, dear, are good for my ego.” “What aspect of supply side economics has your immediate attention?” “I want to focus on the effects of deregulation. As you know, our roots are deep in the coal industry, where not enough regulation led to hundreds of disasters around the world, some the worst within fifty miles of the community where we grew up.” Jack said “I remember well, especially my dad, as part of management. Hoping for less regulation, arguing that answering to 276 regulators put a heavy strain on the net income he reported to headquarters.” I giggled “That, of course, escaped my attention since I was hot after his son during that one year.” Jack laughed and said, “It was always my opinion that dad made the expected noise but was happy to have reason to enforce safety rules. It certainly showed well in the safety record of that mine in Coalton.” “In retrospect, I think you are right. The Coalton mine was seldom cited for violations in contrast to most of the mines in West Virginia. My Aunt Kate, who kept up on such news, always spoke of those citations around our dinner table. My brother Mickey and I learned a lot by assimilating dinner table conversational in our home.” “I liked your Aunt Kate. She was sharp and very sophisticated.” “You may not remember that she was married to a successful business man, living in Pittsburgh until her husband’s death. She moved back to Coalton to be with her only living relative, her sister, my mom.” “I guess I had never heard that. She seems to have had some serious influence during your maturing years.” “She certainly did. I spent a lot of time at her home, which was next door to ours. Although my mom was easy to talk with, every girl needs or certainly can use a personal confidant. Aunt Kate was mine.” “That was your good fortune, indeed. I would have loved to have some one in my life like that as a teenager.” “We seem to have moved off the subject of my going back to the Times.” “Well, I like the idea of your being an independent contractor. It gives us the freedom for making some choices without upsetting your employers. What if the financial subject doesn’t fit their needs at present?” “I feel sure Frannie would like to have me focusing on women’s issues. There are so many specific issues, many of which haven’t been explored.” 277 “Would you be willing to take on those issues again?” “Given the right opportunity, I’d say definitely yes.” I called Frannie Compton at the New York Times Magazine office. “Hi, Frannie, it’s Cathy Check.” “Cathy. What a wonderful surprise. Tell me you want to come to work for me. Make my day.” I laughed, delighted to hear a warm welcoming voice. “I’m not sure about making your day but I would like to take you to lunch and chat about an idea that is percolating through my mind.” “I’d be delighted but you will have to put up with my sales pitch about getting you back on staff at the magazine. By the way, you won’t believe me when I tell you that a friend from your past is sitting across the desk.” “I couldn’t possibly guess.” The phone was silent for about fifteen seconds. “Hello, Cathy. This is Gloria Steinem. How is my too-young-to-be retired reporter doing? “I’m well, thank you. How about you?” “I’m fine, still organizing women so that they may recover their birthrights. Why don’t you take some time and come visit me. Maybe you can do some writing for us.” “That kind of visit would be nice. Same phone number?” “Yes. Promise you will call. Here’s Frannie.” “Hi, Cathy. How about that for a surprise?” “Really. I promised her I would call her for a date to visit.” “Now. When are you coming in to see me?” “I’m flexible. You tell me what is convenient.” “Tomorrow at eleven sound okay?” “I’ll be there.” 278 Jack walked in at six that evening. He swooped up Diane who was eagerly waiting for his arrival. They dance over toward me so that I could join in a three-partner swing while Jack hummed an oldie, Chattanooga ChooChoo, Diane repeating ChooChoo, ChooChoo. “You’re looking a little smug” Jack said as he handed me a glass of wine. Diane was helping Olga setting the table with silverware. “I have a date with Frannie, at the Times magazine tomorrow and an invite to call Gloria Steinem for a visit. I may even take her to lunch.” “Wow, a double jackpot. How did that happen?” “Gloria was visiting with Frannie when I called on her private phone. It felt like old times, Jack.” “That is exciting. What time, tomorrow?” “I’ll go to the office at eleven. I’ll make a reservation for lunch at twelve-thirty.” I’ll plan to say a prayer for you about noon.” “Thank you, dear.” At that moment Diane ran in and hopped onto Jack’s lap. “Olga says dinner is ready.” The front desk receptionist gave me a big warm smile, “Welcome back to the office, Ms. Check. Ms Compton is expecting you. You need to wear this temporary I.D. on your lapel.” I started for the elevators, only to be intercepted by Foster, the security guard in the reception area. “Nice to see you, Ms. Cheka. Jimmy will meet you as you step of the elevator and escort you to Ms Compton’s office. New procedures were installed last month.” Hue bowed me into the elevator. Jimmy gave me a big grin. “You are as stunning as ever, Cathy. Lovely to see you.” He placed my hand in the crook of his arm and escorted me to familiar territory. The vase of hothouse roses was in its usual place but the young receptionist was new. She stood, moved around the desk and put out her hand to welcome me. “I am delighted to meet you.” before she 279 cold says more, Frannie was dashing out of her office to wrap me in a large hug. “Welcome, Cathy. The coffee pot is on along with some scones, the blueberry ones that are your favorites.” “Wow, Frannie, the red carpet treatment is making me uncomfortable.” She laughed. “That is the way I planned it.” Come in and take off a load. Baby pictures and baby stories first.” A half hour later, both of us a little teary after I told her of my miscarriage, I was able to get to the reason for my visit. She interrupted with “Knowing you I expect you have planned on taking me to lunch. Am I right?” I nodded. “Why don’t you call to cancel? I have ordered in so we can have a totally private long time together.” She poured more coffee and asked “Am I right that you want to go back to work for a while, at least?’ “You’re right on, as usual. Jack and I have decided to wait a minimum of a year before we try for another pregnancy. Doc thinks we will be successful if we delay for six months or more.” “I know that is not your preference but it is good news for the Times. You will have no problem if I know Freddie, Bill or Mac. I believe they will be as eager to get you as I am.” “Wow. I came in today with the idea of testing the waters. I wanted to see if you could help me by pointing in the right direction. Now I am over whelmed with what you have just told me.” “That’s just your modesty showing.” “Not so. I figured the odds were against me since I can only assure a year before needing another interruption.” 280 “Well, I know better. Freddie, of course, will be disappointed. He needs someone or two in the foreign department and I ‘m sure you will not want to travel without Jack and Diane.” “That’s true.” “So I only have to fight the City Desk or the National Desk for your services and I get he first shot.” I laughed. “Frannie, you’re a kick. I think it’s time to get serious.” “I am serious, so tell me if you have something specific in mind or are willing to go with the flow.” “I have been mulling over some ideas. I wondered whether there were some women issues that might be opened up for the interest of women across the nation.” “I also believe some good investigation would expose some weakness is the way our government is still failing our Vietnam veterans.” Frannie lit up. “I can assure you that both areas are ripe for some good reporting.” “I also have been doing a lot of research on the economy, not quite sure about all this talk of supply side economics. Further more, congress and the administration are fiddling with regulations that portent worse problems than the ones they are trying to solve. At least that’s my opinion after reading volumes at the Columbia business school library.” “If I can read between the lines, you are suggesting examination of the suggested solutions, not reporting on current events in the business world. Is that right?” “I think so. I don’t visualize myself as a business reporter even if my concern is in that field.” At that moment a knock on the door announced the arrival of our food. We headed for the rest room to stretch our legs and wash up. During the meal Frannie brought me up to date on changes occurring in house and within her family while I updated her regarding my family. 281 “Management is pleased with Bill on the City desk. By the way, I hear that Mitch is returning from Israel and is going to be Bill’s number two.” “That is great. I think Mitch is outstanding and has a nice touch with reporters and stringers with whom he works. I know his office staff adored him.” Frannie began asking me about any other ideas I had but was interrupted by the ringing of the phone. “Yes. Fifteen minutes? Yes, I can make that.” She put the phone back in the cradle. “Sorry, Cathy. Something urgent. If I can set up a meeting with the big three for tomorrow, will you be available?” “Yes, if it is after lunch.” “I’ll call you.” She walked me to the door and gave me a warm hug as we said our goodbyes. I called Gloria just after returning home. She invited me to lunch for the next day since she was heading out on a trip the day after. I was floating on air all afternoon, singing to Diane as we strolled in the park. When she was down for her nap, I put on a Vivaldi recording. Most of his compositions were bright and uplifting. I danced around, hardly able to wait for Jack’s arrival. I tried to tone down my enthusiasm when I heard his footsteps approaching our apartment door. He took one quick look at my face before he buried his lips in mine for our customary greeting. He pulled back and said “Out with it. I can see you have good news to share.” I laughed, gave him another hug and led him to the sofa. I practically gushed. “Jack, it is unbelievable. Frannie spent almost three hours with me. She assures me I will have a job with the Times.” “Slow down and give me the whole story while I mix some drinks.” 282 Diane rushed in as Jack stood. He picked her up and danced around for a few minutes. I fidgeted the whole time, for once wanting Olga to take Diane back into the other part of the apartment. Finally Jack put Diane into Olga’s arms, mixed the drinks and plopped down next to me on the sofa. By this time, I had organized my thoughts and related in detail the conversation with Frannie, telling him of the expected conference tomorrow. “She definitely wants me on the magazine regardless of what areas of research that I want to pursue.” He was beaming as my story unfolded. He was about to comment when the phone rang. I answered. “Cathy, its Frannie. Is three thirty tomorrow good for you?” “It is.” “Good. We’ll meet in Mac’s office. See you, then.” Jack took the phone from my hand and set it back into the cradle, wrapped his arms around me, saying “No surprises there, darling. Did you and Frannie talk about our plans to try again after another year?” Oh, yes. She says it should be no problem. She said she would take me even for eight or nine month. Let’s celebrate.” “I like the idea of celebrating but shouldn’t we wait until you get the job?” “Mama always said to celebrate on the first news. You may be too busy by the time the ink is dry on the contract.” We partied in our special way, taking Diane and Olga to Pop’s Creamery on Broadway for his famous thick ice cream milk shakes. I received a warm welcome from Bill and Mac at three thirty the next afternoon. We had hardly settled down when Freddie, my old boss from the International Department popped in. “I can’t stay but I needed to verify the rumors that you had recovered.” 283 “I really have, Freddie and I am touched that you came in to be certain.” True to his word, two minutes later he was gone. “Before we get started, I bring you greetings from Gloria. We had a great meeting at lunch, covering her current projects. She is absolutely tireless.” Bill laughingly said “And she offered you a job as her press officer.” I felt the blood rising from my throat up to my forehead and just nodded. Frannie said, “I am no surprised. She can use someone of your talent. The feminist movement is losing some steam; particularly since the failure o ratify the Equal Rights Amendment. Early gains have been fine but women still have many issues to address within this society.” “Gloria made that very clear during our meeting. She is turning some of her time toward the issue of reproductive rights for women and wants me to spear head the research that will undergird a movement to mobilize young women.” Mac interrupted. “Frannie mentioned a number of ideas that you discussed during your meeting. Care to share?” “We hardly had a chance to discuss them but I have some ideas which might be acceptable to the Times. Among the ideas is exploring the questionable results of supply side economics which is being highly touted, another is the recent patchwork approach to the stagflation concern. For me there are always the many women’s issues.” “I take it you have been doing a lot of research via libraries and news periodicals, etcetera.” I laughed. “It was a tough job trying to stay unemployed, something I had not done since my seventeenth birthday.” Everyone chuckled. Mac continued, “At present, we have some real serious probing into the economic issues your cited. You do not surprise me, as usual, with your keen insight into key issues, but for the 284 moment, I think I would like to have you available later in the presidential campaign.” Bill interjected “The City department can use you, Cathy, if that same type of research and analysis of city affairs would interest you.” Before I could respond, Frannie jumped in. “Bill, it would be a waste of her talent to spend time on the perennial issue of New York City financial mismanagement.” Bill chortled “That’s fine for you to say, just because you want her in your bailiwick.” “Damn straight, but you have to agree that she is a major talent, worthy of meatier substance.” I think that I managed to mask my pride at being so highly rated, by colleagues who were acting as though I was not present. Bill looked at me. “I think city finances and politics are outside my ken at the moment, Bill.” He shrugged “You’re right, but you were my protégé in whom I am so well pleased and would like to have you close by.” “Thanks, Bill.” Mac said, “Looks like Frannie has the most to offer at this point.” 285 Chapter 18. The following Monday, after being situated in my office and meeting with my administrative assistant, Sissy, I was sipping my second coffee. I had another ten minutes before my scheduled meeting with Frannie. Promptly at ten, her office door open and four of our staffers were exiting while she was waving in my direction. Her gal Friday brought in two carafes, tea and coffee. “What’s your poison?” asked Frannie. I choose tea and a scone. Without any preliminaries she started in. “are you limited to working on women’s issue or is there some other area which you would like to address?’ “I think the women issues. There are so many facets to consider. Some one needs to help the leaders like Gloria, especially in light of the near miss on the ERA.” “We can and want to work with that. Would you like to take charge of a page or a department just as you did when we first came together?’ “I’m not sure, at least not at first. I think I need to do some field research, meeting with some of the current active groups and finding some new or emerging groups.” “All right, perhaps we can start with a column covering the general subject, highlighting a few of the more pressing concerns.” We were in agreement and spent a few more minutes on some housekeeping items before I left. Frannie introduced the first column with a headlined note from the editor regarding the return to the magazine by the former columnist of ‘Profiles by CC’. My first column was printed immediately under her note. The title was ‘A Long Way to Travel’. In the first two paragraphs I listed the few significant changes, which provided some increased equality. I 286 referred to politics, women clergy in mainline protestant denominations and some reports showing women at corporate executive levels I began the third paragraph with “Women will know there is some equality when they have the protection of the law when forcibly raped by their husbands. A woman will feel better when the she receives equal pay for the same work performed as her male counterpart. A woman will know she is equal when she is free to make informed reproductive choices.” My last paragraph then made reference to future topics such as lack of opportunity for African-American and Hispanic women in the work place, the discrimination against lesbians, inequality for women seeking ordination in the Roman Catholic Church. Frannie made a prediction when she personally edited and approved the submission for the first publication “I predict all hell to break loose at the switchboard on Monday morning and we will have angry clerks in the mailroom for the rest of the week.” She was so right. More than seventy five per cent of the phone calls expressed outrage and anger that I planned to write about bedroom marital rape, a subject that should not be discussed in public. As for parenthood planning, “This will only encourage women to choose abortions”. On the other hand, more than seventy five percent of the letters that followed were supportive of the content, encouraging me to use more space on the issues mentioned. At the Monday afternoon editorial review, there was practically no conversation while we waited for Frannie to return from upstairs. While it wasn’t obvious, I thought my new associates preferred seats away from mine. Frannie came in beaming. “We hit the jackpot I got some flak from some of my male counterparts at the executive staff meeting this morning but mostly kudos for Cathy’s column. The disgruntled calls outweighed the pros by three to one but the statisticians thought that was 287 good for readership, predicting that the mail will show approval.” They were right. Joseph, a feature writer asked “Did anyone say anything about response from advertisers? “Oh yes, but fewer than we would have predicted. Apparently not one had threatened to pull their ads, although we will get more calls when specific issues are covered or if some of the guest columnists are viewed as radicals.” I sighed with relief. Frannie flashed me a smile and changed subjects. Jack arrived quite late that evening, obviously worn out from some heavy work at his office but swooped up Diane and danced her about the living room. When he finally plopped down in his big easy chair, I handed him his glass of wine and sat down on the floor at his feet, sipping my drink. “I’ll bet the message center at the Times was busy responding to angry callers.” “Most were negative but there was some positive reaction.” “My guess is that much of the negative stuff was vitriolic, am I right?” “I’m afraid I keep being amazed at the way some so called religious people can be so narrow minded, unforgiving and hateful. Frannie says the mail this week will be more supportive than anti.” “I’ve read articles saying that on the abortion issue folks who oppose abortion seem to extremely violent at many of the protest demonstrations.” “I certainly am not expecting to be in any danger, honey.” “I hope not.” 288 While the mail did contain heavy supporting response, a few of the letters sounded threatening and in each case were unsigned. Frannie and I had agreed to select an important but less threatening topic for the next column. I suggested and she quickly approved my choice “Discriminating against Women with Disabilities.” While many of the examples focused pm women, the issue was disability I began the column calling for public and governmental attention to the goals of “full participation” by disabled persons and finding ways to guarantee the “equality” of opportunity and treatment, of disabled women. I pointed out that my sources at several of organizations of disabled persons, pointed out that the goal was to ensure the maximum degree of autonomy and independence for the disabled. The ending called for a change of attitude in the community towards persons who suffer from some disability, real or apparent The telephone message center was not inundated but my column did get the single highest number of all the calls on Monday morning. Most of it was positive, some wanting information on ways to join in the effort to make changes. Frannie announced the information at the afternoon staff meeting and then invited me to stay for our weekly planning meeting. We agreed to stay on this subject for two more weeks. The next column would list as many organizations around the country that were lobbying for helpful changes not only for physically handicapped but also for mentally handicapped. The following week would be a guest columnist, perhaps a leader of one of the new national organizations. The critics among my readers, I am sure, were waiting for a column they could jump on. That opportunity presented itself when I printed an interview with Gloria Steinem on the subject of parental planning, use of the pill and a woman’s right to terminate her pregnancy. 289 The very short but last paragraph said that in the following week a counter point of view would appear on this page. That paragraph seems not to have any effect. Callers who took offense at one or more of the three issues covered in the interview flooded the phone center. The language in many cases was vitriolic and coarse Management had added three additional staff members to handle the calls Frannie briefed us at the Monday afternoon staff meeting. “The sad news is that there were fourteen death threats to Gloria and ten for Cathy. Our statistician says that number will double when the letters are tallied during the coming week. I’ve already called to inform Gloria, who says this is old hat, but I think we need to take this more seriously. Cathy. Let’s meet in my office after this staff meeting.” I have to admit I was frightened even though I would not be deterred. For some reason, I was experiencing fear that was greater than any I had know on the killing fields. Waiting in Frannie’s office while she made a couple of calls, I noticed that the tissue in my hand was wet with moisture on the palm of my hand. My knees felt cold and my mind raced with ways in which such a threat might be carried out. Frannie placed down phone, saying, “Mr. Shmidt from Security will be joining us Cathy. I must tell you that I have received hate mail and an occasional threatening one but this scares me. There have been signs of growing violence at Planned Parenthood clinics recently it is ironic that the accusers are now threatening their own form of homicide.” A tall well built man, about forty-years of age, walked in. He shook my hand “I’m Jim and you must be the intrepid Cathy Cheka.” His words were accompanied by a warm smile. “How are you feeling?” “More frightened than I was on the line in Vietnam.” 290 “Sorry, but I am glad that you understand the seriousness. I can assure you that this is not the first time for a member of our staff. It just isn’t anything we talk about.” I sighed with a bit of relief. “That makes me feel easier but not safer. I am hoping you have a plan to make me feel safer.” “We need to determine if the threats are serious and make sure you are protected. So, the plan for today is to have four of my people, waiting discreetly for your walk to the subway. Each will be looking for someone showing a special interest in you. Even if nothing is apparent, I will board the subway and ride with you to 116th Street. During the ride I want you to walk to an adjoining car so I can determine if anyone is following you. If all is clear until you step of the subway, we can assume you are safe for the day.” “That sounds reasonable. Are you planning to do this for some extended time period?” “At least for a week. Tomorrow I will introduce you to my replacement for the subway ride. We can evaluate at the end of the week.” I actually heard myself sigh with relief before I said, “Sounds good to me.” Jim handed me his card. “Call me fifteen minutes before you are ready to leave.” The tension in my body, as we boarded, was agonizing. I realize my fists were clenched to the point of aching. By the time we reached Columbus Circle, I felt my muscles easing. I stood and wound my way to the next car, making sure that Jim was behind me. I surprised myself with the amount of relaxation I felt when I detrained at my stop and literally was whistling by the time I arrived home. Playing with Diane took my mind off the concern until Jack walked in. The idea of telling him the story initiated those feelings of 291 fear. I could feel my body tightening up while I watched Jack and Diane go through their evening routine. “Darling, it looks like a bad day at the office if I read your body language.” I started to tell him of the reaction and the threats but broke down into tears before I completed the first sentence. It was a good thing he had removed his silk tie because I slobbered all over his shirtfront. Thirty minutes later Jack had all the details and calm had settled over me. Diane and Olga came in to say goodbye since Olga was sitting a group of three children overnight, one of whom was Diane’s best friend. The two us, seated on the sofa, treated ourselves to the salad that Olga had prepared while we watched the evening newscast. The last story showed a group of fifty or so anti abortion protestors displaying placards across the street from the Times office. Jack felt me shudder and pulled me to his shoulder. A bit later he treated me to one of his famous massages for a stressed woman, scrubbed my back in the very warm bath, toweled me and tucked me in for the night. In the morning, I called Jim to give him my ETA on the subway, delighted to find him and an associate when I stepped off the train. “Cathy, meet Joe Stan, who is my replacement and can be reached at my number” We shook hands and headed for the office. I had hopes of recruiting Phyllis Schally, the most articulate voice for the anti-feminism point of view. I wanted the best to present some balance in our series. She was unavailable but two of her associates agreed to meet with me, so that I could present the counter argument. I was glad that they agreed to meet in our offices avoiding my going out. The older of the two, a Mrs. Edwin James, said that I could attribute their comments to Mrs. Schlafly. She handed me a printed copy 292 of what was to be my interview. Although I pressed them for responses, I either got a no comment or a reference to the printed sheet they brought with them. It was lest than satisfactory but their points were well articulated clearly as to their displeasure with Roe vs. Wade, Planned Parenthood and why the Equal Rights Amendment must not be ratified. Just as they were leaving, the younger of the twosome slipped out a camera and snapped my picture before I could stop her I wished I had the power to take her camera, sensing that my face would now be displayed in the enemy camp. After their departure, I called Mr. Stan to let him know that it might be likely that some enemy of mine now cold identify me. He thanked me and agreed that the risk was now a notch higher than previously. Nothing of importance occurred during the balance of the week, but events took a turn for the worst on the following Monday evening. While I was standing waiting for the Broadway subway, a nicely dressed gentleman in light gray suit and blue tie with dark hair with gray sideburns, smiled while he uttered some of the foulest language I had ever heard, ending with “Your life isn’t worth a fig now that we recognize you, Miss Cheka.” He reached out to touch me but I screamed. Joe appeared out of nowhere. H had a friend who placed himself between my accuser and me. At that moment, the train arrived. Joe hustled me into the car while his associate deterred the stranger from boarding. “Get a grip, Ms. Cheka. I’ll be close by, and your new friend did not have a chance to board.” Trembling and feeling nauseous, I focused on the need to stay calm, a nearly impossible task. I could not stop the shivers. Nothing more happened but the evening at home was a repeat of the one last week. Jack and I were up early and had our coffee on the balcony overlooking the Hudson River. He asked “how are you feeling honey?’ 293 “Surprisingly calm. Mulling over the event during a wakeful period in the night, I came to the conclusion that my confronter is only trying to frighten me. Nothing about his appearance says violent action although his language was foul. Even that had the feeling of being rehearsed and practiced.” “Never the less, we are taking no chance. Jim reminded me that appearances often belie the man behind the mask. He also told me that there may some other nut that is planning something worse.” In the morning I realized that the tension was back as I faced a new day on the subway. Jack and a neighbor from the apartment house walked me to the subway and planned to continue for some time. Joe planned to stay with me until I reached home each evening. I still had the ride downtown each morning without an escort. My body tightened the moment I was without company as I stepped onto the subway car. I found a seat thus giving me a chance to view all my neighbors with my back to the wall, so to speak. The car was jammed by the time we left Columbus circle and I was winding up with fear that no one would even notice if I were stabbed or shot in the belly with a silenced pistol. I finally relaxed a bit as we drew closer to my stop and almost smiled when I recognized my escort on the platform outside the car. I did arrange to arrive at different times each morning. The tension was palpable and the grip on my purse was firm and set the way Joe had trained me. The purse had several roles of quarters deep in the pocket making my purse a weapon if swung properly. During the next two evenings my confronter appeared fifteen or more feet in front of me, gave me a satisfied grin but did not approach me or board the train. That did have the effect of keeping me tense and on my toes, especially when I made the transition to an adjoining car, but I was never to see him again. 294 About a week later at dinner, Jack asked, “Cathy, have you lost your appetite?” Before I could answer, Olga said. “She sure has, Mr. Jack. I think she has lost at least five pounds during the last two weeks.” I smiled sheepishly. You’re right. I have lost weight. I just don’t feel like eating except for a light breakfast.” “Well, something must be done about that. How about thick milk shake with chocolate sauce and vanilla ice cream?’ Diane said. “That sounds yummy. Can we some now, daddy?” “Yes, if you say May we instead of Can we. “May we?” “Yes, you may.” He rose and ten minutes later we were indulging our selves leaving the meat loaf for a cold lunch on Saturday. Another week rolled by with no apparent increased risk. I was aware of being less tense although I thought Joe was a bit more brisk although no less courteous. Wednesday of the following week, I was aware that one of New York’s finest entered the subway car and moved to the front end, appearing to look out the window toward the platform Joe was in his usual position but someone who appeared to be slightly familiar took a standing position next to me. I felt a prickle run down my spine, like a warning signal that I brushed off to nerves. I saw nothing different from any other evening on the ride home. Just was we were pulling into the Seventy-second Street station, I heard a rustle behind me, noticed the police officer moving toward me. I turned to see Joe with a bear hug around a man hanging on to a pistol of some sort. Within seconds the officer had the man’s pistol and was handcuffing his prisoner. The trains had pulled to a stop and within seconds the prisoner was hustled off and the boarding riders were cramming into the car around me. 295 Joe was standing next to me with his hand lightly on my shoulder, hoping to keep me calm and it did. I stayed that way until Joe walked me to the door of the apartment building, along with my neighbor Joe said “If you can take off tomorrow, don’t come in. Either Jim or I will plan to come by with all the information available and talk about next steps.” “Thanks, but I can’t afford to miss. I’ll call with my ETA, as usual.” I was jittery during the whole evening. There was nothing Jack or Diane could do to reduce the fear that persisted. Shortly after arriving, at the apartment, I decided to call Gloria Steinem She was aware of the threats and had told me that she simply ignored them. Perhaps she could say something to help me. “Steinem here.” “Gloria. This is Cathy.” “Hi. You sound tense.” “I am. I was hoping you had some advice for a scared reporter whose life was threatened on a subway ride this evening.” “You mean literally, Yes, I can tell. Tell me. More” I spilled the whole story, my words gushing at the rate of the current on a white water river, with pauses only to take a deep breath. She listened without saying a word until I had come to the end. “Gloria. Tell me how you dismiss the threats without fear.” “Cathy, I would not deny the fear in my gut. I have just been fortunate that the only threats I have faced are words, written or spoken and in some cases a bit of shoving.” “Even the physical contact must have affected you and upset you.” “Absolutely. If the physical shoving or the spitting occurred on my way home, I went home and screamed out my fear. On a few occasions when I was headed for an engagement, I have been known to 296 ask my host to delay my appearance while I locked myself into a powder room until I recovered my composure.” “How do you get there so quickly?” “I usually give myself a pep talk, knowing that I am being effective if my opponents are being driven to such extremes.” “You are so brave.” “No more than you are. I can’t offer any advice beyond telling you what I have done. But I am sure you will handle it. Call me. I will be available any time you want to talk.” I surprise myself by becoming calm and not yielding to the panic that had been there. I poured myself a glass wine and calmly waited for Jack. He was totally upset and angry when I related the experience over coffee after dinner. After muttering under his breath, apparently curses, he set down his cup, walked to my chair, knelt and wrapped me gently in his arms, planting sweet kisses on my lips. “Cathy, despite your outward calm you’re as tight as a drum.” He moved his lips to the hollow of my throat his hands moved to my back and gently whispered down my spine. I gave a slight shiver. It was so loving and seductive that I felt myself melting and was responding with a storm of desire for he whole Jack. I heard myself moan, took his hand and led him to our bed, the safest place on earth. The next weekend issue was a full page of letters responding to the last two issues. Frannie and I work hard to provide a balance of point of view but the criticism. From conservatives and pro-lifers contained more harsh, cruel or vitriolic phrases. Thankfully there were no threats either in the phone calls or the letters that followed. Jim had delayed our evaluation meeting until the following Monday morning, wanting to have a full background report on the 297 gunman. The basic information uncovered by the search of his background after a thorough grilling of the suspect was that he worked alone, only meant to harm me with a bullet in between my legs. I gagged at the thought, regardless of the gentleness that Jim used to explain to me. They also learned that he had bee suspected of threatening death to workers in two different clinics but there was never enough evidence to have him jailed or arrested. At the end of the week we called off the security routine, suspecting that no further danger existed. The next ten months were exciting as I tried and I think, successfully covered the waterfront of a variety of women’s issues. We found cases to expose a strong bias against women on assembly lines, women receiving less pay than male counterparts in the same positions. We uncovered a number of major situations in which abler women were passed over for promotions in the executive ranks of public corporations and in some local government agencies. Our prime goal was alerting the reading public to the issue of bias against women and their right to equality in a wide range of situations. We gave serious coverage to the effect on women minorities, especially in one-parent households. There were a number of issues featuring our concern internationally on the subject of female genital mutilation One subject kept creeping back into our pages. Were their husbands or lovers abusing women? The work was rewarding and readership and correspondence from readers at an all levels of society. Two awards from the National Press Association hang on Frannie’s office wall. 298 I forgot to mention an important happening about six months ago. A beautiful young black woman appeared in my office. I jumped from my chair to give her a big bear hug. “Elsie James, a sight for sore eyes.” Elsie was my young friend and guide through Harlem and the Columbia riots in 1968. I said “Pull up a chair and clue me in on your life.” After a ten minute briefing and another ten as I told her of my private life, she said “Cathy, while I love this personal time with you, I am also here to apply for the posted job as your assistant. I’ve been working, since being hired, in the city department as a rewriter. I’m hoping for a change and a chance to work in the field.” “Wow. It would be great working together again. Do you have your application form and supporting papers with you?” “I do.” “The final decision will be Frannie’s but I have some say so. Let’s see if she is available.” I phoned and we were invited to come to her office in fifteen minutes. “Frannie, this is Elsie James, who as a student reporter at Barnard worked with me on the Columbia riots in ’68.” “Welcome, Ms. James.” “The last name is Johnson. I’ve been married for six years.” I started to leave but Frannie waved me into a seat while she scanned Elsie’s papers. She looked up and said “Very impressive, Ms. Johnson. Two years working with single parent mothers in South Africa and Rwanda plus another four years on the Newark Herald, before joining us in the city department. Impressive. Tell me about your work with Cathy.” Elsie gave a full run down on the work of the black students focus on the gymnasium apart from the SDS led riots. She talked about our joint work and her inside information. 299 After a grilling of twenty minutes or more she dismissed Elsie and with a grin said to me “Speak.” “The Elsie I worked with was a first class reporter even as a student. I’d love to work with her and groom her to eventually replace me, but you may have better applicants.” “We do have two outstanding ones from outside and two mediocre ones from current employees. Why don’t you talk with the other in house candidates and review all the applications and then meet with me late this afternoon so we can talk. I’m off to a meeting in two minutes.” Before I left for home we both agreed that Elsie was our best choice. Since she came aboard, Elsie and I worked together hand in glove. She specialized with minority women in her fieldwork, establishing easy rapport especially with the younger women. By this time we were working almost as partners rather than boss and employee. We were so busy that I asked for and got a part time assistant, a Barnard young woman. Her name was Felicia, a beautiful Porto Rican student commuter from Spanish Harlem One evening as Jack and I were snuggling on the couch, I said, “Honey, I’m feeling very sexy and if my calendar marking is right, this could be a day for making a baby.” With out a word he stood, scooped me into his arms and headed for the bedroom. It was a glorious night, reminiscent of our honeymoon, followed by the same intensity for the next several days. No luck. A month later we were enjoying the practice but with no result. By the third month, the joy was eluding us and we can to feel like this was hard work. Making love was losing its appeal. Our time in bed seemed more like work. We were both disheartened. 300 We decided to visit Doc, who recommended a special fertility clinic Six weeks later the news was not unexpected but it was devastating. I was unable to conceive another baby Silence and tears describes the ride home. I dried my eyes before we reached the front door of the apartment. I tried to put up a good front for Diane when she got home from school but to no avail. “What’s wrong? Mommy, that’s not the kind of smile you have for me on other days.” I broke down, unable to speak, while she and Jack wrapped their arms around me. Jack explained, “Sweetie, we just received news from the doctor that we can not have a baby brother for you as we planned.” His voice broke, bringing tears to his eyes and Diane’s. The following minutes were filled with hugs and tears When we separated Diane said “May be I can love you both twice as much as I do now.” To take our minds off the sadness, Jack rented a station wagon to take the four of us upstate to visit West Point, some of the small villages along the Hudson and two nights in old-fashioned inns along the river. It was a delightful and therapeutic change. 301 Chapter 19. Life eventually settled into a routine. Work was a pleasure, especially with Elsie and Felicia willing to carry a heavier load during my battle to right the Check boat. On a Tuesday early afternoon, Frannie invited me to lunch in the Executive dining room. When we had been seated for a few minutes, in walked Mac, the honcho on the National Desk. Frannie waved to catch his eye, a signal that brought him to our table in the corner. He gave me a light but warm hug and took a seat, a surprise since I figured this was a tete-a-tete, but realized in a moment that I was wrong. He laughed “Surprised? This is actually my party. Let’s order so I can take you off the tenterhooks.” A few minutes later with drinks in hand, we huddled as Mac asked “I hear you are doing well and fully saddled up, Cathy.” “I am, Mac, and really roaring with a great staff.” “So Frannie tells me. Would you consider a change of pace to be appropriate at this time?” “I’m open if it is as challenging as the work we do at present?” “We think it is but it may take some travel time away from your family.” “What sort of travel?” “Domestic, taking possibly three to ten days at any one time. That is only an estimate.” “I think Jack and Diane might agree to that. Tell me what is involved.” “In a prior conversation with Frannie you mentioned doing research at the Columbia Business library on the subject of supply side economics and deregulation. Remember?” “I do.” 302 “Bill and I have been doing some digging into behavior on Wall Street and across the whole financial spectrum. We feel there are things happening that do not bode well for the nation. Human greed, something always present, seems to be coming into focus.” “Isn’t this something for the business reporters?” “Yes but we think some discovered cases of fraud and extreme greed in the popular week-end magazine might grab the public attention more quickly.” “Gee. I haven’t given any thought to the idea. I have no idea where to start.” “Well, the Times morgue and Columbia Business library are good launching points. I also have a brilliant young reporter with a MBA from Harvard who might be a good partner. He chose investigative reporting instead of a Wall Street Investment Bank for his career.” “He sounds a bit too eager to prove a point.” “Maybe, but he knows the ins and outs of the finance business and I think you can teach him how to get information without upsetting the applecart too soon.” Our food arrived giving me a chance to organize my thoughts. When the waiter departed, I turned to Frannie. She smiled and nodded, which I took as a signal that she liked the idea. A bit later I asked “what kind of time line?’ “We start when you give the signal. If it is a go, we arrange for another cubicle near your office for Ron Micka, your associate. He will spend time in both departments when not in the field. He will still take some regular assignments in the Business Department.” We sat silently when the bus boy began removing our plates and serving coffee. A few minutes later I said “I’m in unless I meet resistance at home, although I don’t expect any I’ll let you know tomorrow.” 303 The family conference began when Olga and Diane served up dessert. I opened with the introduction to the idea, no preliminaries. “I’ve been offered a special opportunity at work and I need your approval before I give them my answer. Jack, I mentioned my interest in business investigative reporting before I went back to work. Do you remember?” “Yes, not in detail, but I remember.” I turned to Diane and Olga, giving them full detail of the project. “This is where we need the full agreement of all present. The work will require some traveling, as little as three or as much as ten days on occasion.” There was dead silence for almost a, minute. I said to myself “That went over like a lead balloon”, when Diane burst out “I think that is marvelous.” I looked at Jack and Olga for some signal. Jack knew it really came down to his acceptance or not. “I agree provided you are not into some illegal snooping that puts you at risk.” Olga said “If Diane agrees to listen to me when Mr. Jack is not home; I am willing to do what is necessary. It sounds exciting.” “Aren’t there any second thoughts, any questions?” Every one nodded which I took as full approval. Olga said, “I have a special dessert to help us celebrate. Noise and chatter filled the room as we pigged out on chocolate fudge sundaes The following Monday, I phoned Ron at his extension in the business department “This is Cathy Cheka. When can we meet?” Twenty minutes later he was seated at my desk sipping a cup of black coffee. Ron was twenty-six, six feet tall, blond hair, light blue eyes and a face that everyone would trust. I had read his dossier and was impressed but had to ask “Why the Times when you could pick your spot on Wall Street?” 304 “I like to sleep peacefully each night with my wife and little boy.” I didn’t press him knowing that if all worked out; we would know each other very well within weeks. I said “Your desk is promised for Wednesday but there is an empty desk in the bull pen for now.” “That’s all right. I can use the phone at my other desk. Do you have a plan?” “I thought we could start with anything you have and then I’ll give you my idea.” “All right. I have an inside tip from an employee at a major brokerage saying that recently some exec has changed a date on some loan they made. This seems to have been done in order to help a client improve his balance sheet. I don’t know what that means yet but changing contract dates sounds fishy and I would like to pursue that.” “Maybe we can go there but we need to set some ground rules into play and develop some strategies. I have been doing some research in the area of deregulation but with no specific focusing yet.” “I suggest we use the balance of the week to do some additional research. Why don’t you use our morgue to see if you can find more information on the operations of the company and also look for other suspicious behavior in any of the stories you read. I will spend time at the Columbia library researching their financials and some others in similar businesses.” “Sounds like a plan. When do we get together?” “How about lunch on Friday?” I stood, indicating that our meeting was over. “Ms. Cheka, I’ve never worked with a woman boss before. I hope you will correct me when I am politically incorrect.” I laughed. “Relax, Ron. We’ll get along fine.” By Thusday afternoon and over twenty hours of digging I had a set of notes that I considered worthy of putting on the table for 305 discussion. I left a little early to be home with Diane and to greet Jack, but I was back at the library when it opened on Friday morning. I was in my office rearranging my notes by eleven in order to be ready for Ron and our luncheon date at one o’clock. In a secluded booth with a thinned down crowd in the small café, we laid out our findings. Ron had loads of details of a massive theft by officers of a life insurance company in Nebraska with whistle blowers inside a New York Brokerage firm who did not want to be identified in any articles but who would testify to the Attorney General’s office in Washington. This was a dynamite story and I knew that it had to have approval from the highest management level. I laid out my discovery of two-pieces of legislation in recent years that I thought could lead to the same kind of misbehavior by some greedy executives in the banking or savings and loan groups. We decided to take our findings to Frannie first in order to test the level of interest and/or resistance to our proceeding. When we had completed our report, Frannie got on the phone. The result was a meeting at four o’clock with Mac, Ron’s editor, Frannie and the two of us. I can still see the scene with Ron’s editor practically drooling with excitement and the usually cool Mac wearing a big grin. It was agreed that we would meet Monday at ten after Mac had consulted with other executives. Mac did not show for the Monday meeting having given full power to Ron’s editor, Mike Forsman, to work out a plan with Frannie and the both of us. We all agreed on Mike’s plan. The first and second weekend issues would carry findings and deductions of findings regarding the threat of possible financial scandals from the deregulation of the thrift industry. 306 The third week’s issue would be a long story of an actual incident of greed and theft as uncovered with further digging into the Nebraska story. Since both stories required a lot more study, it was agreed to choose a target date a month hence. We walked out of that meeting with mixed feelings of elation at the opportunity and the sense of responsibility to deliver solid data. Five weeks later under a joint byline we ran our first column focusing on weaknesses of oversight of Wall Street by the Securities and Exchange Commission. We began the column with stories of scandals before the formation of the SEC after strong opposition from Wall Street. I reviewed the early scandal by Charles Ponzi, father of the Ponzi scheme, which fleeced victims of millions. We resurrected the story of Insull and the Commonwealth Edison collapse that victimized stockholders. Our history also depicted the story of Richard Whitney, President of the New York Stock Exchange who dipped his fingers into the stock exchange employees’ pension fund. The heart of the long column in which we reminded our readers of the human weakness for greed is as old as mankind itself. The availability and use of new technology provided for new and greater opportunities for fraud, in fact, the excitement over new discoveries could be used to victimize millions. We pointed out that one of the needs for the SEC to have more intimate knowledge of the affairs of its members and the key employees of the investment bankers... I wrote the final paragraph asking the SEC and the federal government, if necessary, to move quickly. 307 The switchboard was in overwhelm on Monday, with a horde of decriers and pooh-poohers Frannie told us at the afternoon staff meeting that the some high-powered callers had reached the executive office but no comments would be forthcoming from that source. The following week we ran a much longer story covering our concern of recent congressional action with two bills attempting to save the thrift industry, which had seen tough days in the seventies. Here is some of what we wrote. ‘The S&L business leaders had been complaining the business was hurting under the constraints of regulation It is factual to say that the financial health of the thrift industry was again challenged by a return of high interest rates and inflation, sparked by increasing oil prices. Because this sudden change there was a potential to cause hundreds of S&L failures, Congress finally acted. History reminds us that fixing one problem can cause seven more. Congress passed two bills deregulating the thrift industry... The deregulation allowed thrifts to offer a wider range of savings products, and expanded their lending authority. These changes were intended to allow S&Ls to solve some of their problems. The changes also were the first time that the government explicitly sought to increase S&L profits as opposed to promoting housing and homeownership. Other changes in oversight included allowing the use of lenient accounting rules to report their financial condition and the elimination of restrictions on the minimum numbers of S&L stockholders.” Again I wrote the final paragraph, identifying it as editorial comment. “The reduction in the requirement of outside directors along with the removal of strong oversight is a step too far. We are making room for greed and ambition Corrections are needed by congress before cleverness and greed take over and end up victimizing thousands 308 or even millions. Such action can lead us into a downward spiral as a nation as has been demonstrated in the past.” We submitted the copy to Frannie who raised an eyebrow at the final paragraph, offered no correction but took it to the rewrite editor. I had a very uneasy weekend, thinking that I may have overstated the concern I felt. The switchboard was much busier than the previous Monday I was nervous waiting for Frannie to start the staff meeting. She calmly said “There were three or four times more calls to the top floor than last week, including members of congress and one call from the administration in Washington, That said, she then moved on to other staff business. Whatever the top brass felt, in no way filtered down to our level.Frannie, who had our notes for the last planned column, suggested we lay off for another week and do some more verification work since the story would lay out a specific case of fraud and theft. Frannie also suggested we make the story terse and to the point, allowing for a time to give further details if desired. The column began “Today’s column gives but one example how greed can manipulate and victimize thousands of investors when strict regulation is not enforced.” ‘The following is a true story of greed and fraud uncovered with the help of true citizens. The Secure Life Insurance Company recently ran into trouble with Nebraska insurance regulations. To protect policy holders, the statutes required insurers to maintain a reserve totaling 23% of the total amount invested in higher-risk investments. An 309 inadequate reserve signals the FSLIC that the firm is on shaky ground. That may portend bankruptcy. Security Life indeed was in trouble. To get around the regulations, chief executive officer made an oral arrangement with a Wall Street Banker, Foster Investment Bankers to sell junk bonds on September 30th in exchange for a $100 million dollar "account receivable” due from their brokers" and repurchase the bonds on October 2ndfor the same amount, plus a fee. However, Foster’s recording showed October 1st as the date of sale. Too late to help the Security’s balance sheet. So one of the vice presidents arranged for Foster Investment Brokers to doctor the records by issuing a written confirmation that the trade actually occurred September 30th. Further probing by our staff with another insider at Security produced some other major irregularities. Earlier this year the president worked a scheme to eliminate several problems. These issues included the creation of a suspicious, huge account receivable that was never funded, and the questionable legality of a transaction never consummated by a cash transfer. Our findings have been turned over to the regulators who were already investigating but had run into a stone wall. It would appear that robbery does not have to be committed by thugs and make gunmen. It is also interesting to note that so called upright citizens can go to bed with robbers in order to make another buck. It is our hope that this series call the federal and 310 state regulators to enforce their rags and ask for changes that will protect the citizens of this nation.” In the days following the publication, most of the calls and letters were offering congratulations on a job well done. The phone center was only slightly busier than most Mondays and a little spy work indicated no abundance of calls to the top floor. It had been our hope that the new session of congress might bring some changes as a result of all the flack we had taken, but congressional attention was diverted elsewhere. We didn’t expect much attention from the current administration for obvious reasons. While we were in the running, we were shut out at the Pulitzer awards but not at the National Press awards. At the ceremony I stood alongside Brother Mickey, who was being honored for his photos of the Bhopal, India disaster. The photos were taken three days after the explosion at the Union Carried plan in which over three thousand persons were dead before he arrived. Those photos had shaken the world with the vastness of human suffering and disaster to the earth that was doomed to last for years. 311 Chapter 20. Brother Mickey and I saw each other occasionally at work and irregularly at each other’s homes. The following weekend our family joined them for dinner with Julie’s parents. Her dad was the photographer at the Times who befriended Mickey and helped him launch his career. It was he who had made it possible for the two of us to get to Vietnam, the place where I, first, attracted the attention of readers. It was a wonderful reunion, a gathering that should have happened May times during the past. I noticed Diane, who was entering her adolescent years, in deep conversation with Mickey’s daughters, several years older and ages more mature. My work kept me busy and my stories were varied Over the next several months I spent days in Washington snooping and writing articles on the kind of messy things that keep popping up in the lives of politicians. One night as Jack and I prepared for bed, I said “Jack, I think it’s time to ease off my work and spend more time with Diane.” “Sounds good but what kind of plan do you have in mind?” “I think I can work a deal with Frannie to work three days a week, Wednesday through Fridays that I can have long weekends for the three of us. These are crucial years for any young woman coming into her teen years and I want to be there to support her.” “Great idea. She is beautiful and boys are beginning to hover like flies over sugar.” 312 The evenings we discussed the new plan, Diane was effervescent. “You will have more time to help me with my story writing and composition. Those are my most difficult lessons and homework.” Diane wanted to celebrate so we walked over to Broadway for double ice cream cones. The next several years were delightful and warm. Work was intense only occasionally and Diane matured into a beautiful young woman. We and Mickey’s family took her to Colton for a family celebration of her sixteenth birthday. The only shadow on the picture was mama’s news that daddy’s tuberculosis was taking heavy toll although he put up a great front while fussing over his three grand daughters Daddy died two months later with all of us at his bedside. It was the only shadow on our sunny lives during the next several years. Diane was blossoming into a beautiful young woman. Jack and I were happy in our vocational pursuits My brother Mickey had recently published a magnificent compilation of his character portrayals of pain, suffering, joy and sadness. These people were the faces of India in Bhopal after the explosion, of Gaza youth throwing stones at Israeli soldiers with rifles, of Venice at a wedding in a church courtyard, and much more. Life was about to change I had a surprise call from my friend and former boss, Freddie of the International desk, at nine o’clock on the morning of January 31st, 1986. I recognized his voice and waited with anticipation for him to state the reason for his call. I could feel the beginning of a quiver of excitement. 313 With only a warm greeting, he asked “How would you like to take on a three or four week assignment?” I said “Since you are asking, it sounds like a trip outside the country which means I will have to get permission from my family. What’s up? Our chief resident in Manila has broken his leg and is out of commission for a while. The Presidential snap election is set for a week from today, February 7th. I can also use another photographer and have called your brother who has agreed to take the assignment.” Working on a hunch, I asked “What happed to our station chief?” Freddie was silent for a moment “he got caught in the middle of a large demonstration from anti-Marcos protestors.” I could sense the return of the excitement I had felt all those years ago when the bomb was thrown in the midst of the crowd attending a political rally. That bomb had sent me to the hospital All sorts of memories were being evoked. Perhaps I could have a visit with my long time hero. Senator Salonga, who was the target of that bombing the big question, was the reaction of my loved ones. I asked “When do you need my answer?” “I know you need to talk with your family but time is of the essence.” “I’ll try to get back to you this after noon.” “Thanks. I hope Jack will be amenable, even if reluctant. I really need you.” 314 Jack was working at home this week, so I left the office and surprised him by walking in at eleven thirty. He hugged me and planted a gentle kiss on my lips, “I love having you home so early but I may not like the reason. I see a problem behind those lovely eyes.” “Oh, Jack. That is one of the many things I love about you. Pour me a cup of coffee while I shed my coat and then we can talk?” He listened with his usual full attention and patience until I recited the entire conversation with Freddie. Then he said “Now tell me all that has been going through your head.” “As you can guess, I could feel the blood rush when I heard his voice, knowing that he called only if he needs my help. I felt the excitement rising when he mentioned Manila. I quivered as I recalled the bombing but felt the excitement return as I thought about being in the midst of a potentially major turn in history.” “Has it occurred to you that Marcos will resort to using the military when he thinks the opposition nay be threatening to oust him?” “Yes, I have, but even if that is the case it will be a major historical event that needs to be told to the world.” I could feel myself getting worked up to make a strong pitch while Jack in his mild manner ways would keep me off balance with his questions, but he surprised me. “I can see that the ink runs deep in your veins, honey and that means you want my permission to place yourself in harm’s way. You never needed my permission. We settled that during our courtship. You just need to remember that you have two adoring 315 fans who love you and are waiting for your return and that should spell caution on your behalf.” He took me in his arms as I shed the tears of gratitude for his love and acceptance. He said “Call Freddie. We can discuss the fait accompli with Diane tonight.” As I walked to the phone, I could not help but admire my loving husband. He had to be torn up inside thinking of the risks that I would be running with mobs filling the Plaza and riot police trying to quell the protests with mace, tear gas and possible real bullets. In my desire to follow my heart I was sublimating the risk and yielded to the excitement of being in the midst of a big story. Freddie was not the most expressive boss I had worked with but I could sense his thanks just in the tone of voice. He explained “You are booked out of JFK at ten tomorrow morning. I had made reservations with a hope that you would say yes. By the way, you are traveling as a tourist, not as a working visitor. We were afraid that traveling as a Times journalist would trigger records of your articles, highly critical of the Marcos regime, even over a dozen years ago.” “How do I communicate when I arrive?” “Frank Arias, our temporary station chief will send someone to meet you for coffee at the International Hotel, where you will be residing. Mickey is traveling separately but will also be staying at the International.” I could feel my insides twist a bit as I walked of the plane in Manila. I was beginning to doubt that the record of my last visit 316 would not have me on the black list of visitors. The feeling increased as I stood next in line at the officials’ desk. I was as tight as a drum. The official kept staring at me and then back to the passport. He walked over to another official who shook his head. then stopped to discuss something with the woman at the next desk. Two minutes later I let out my breath in a sigh of relief as I stepped away and headed for customs. The morning of February third started out cooler than the evening before and the humidity was bearable I had an early morning breakfast meeting with Florence Acno from the Times office, She was stenographer, not worthy of being followed by the security police. We chatted about trivial matters, since the real purpose of her visit was to accidentally leave a small tote bag under the table when she departed. I took the bag to my room and spent an hour going over a lot of back ground material related to the anti-Marcos movement, led by Corizon Aquino since the murder of her husband three years ago. Two hours later I presented myself at the reception disk of the office of the Liberal political party, the heart of the opposition to President Marcos. The young lady asked “How may I help you?” “If Mr. Salonga is available, I would like to speak to him. My name is Cathy Cheka.” Before she could respond, he walked out of his office and came forward to take both of my hands in his. “Ms. Cheka, what a marvelous surprise. I never expected our paths might cross again. Please come into my office. Miss Lara will bring us some coffee. I do have time for a chat although we may be interrupted with a phone call or two. This is a crucial time in Philippine politics, as you know.” 317 When we had been served, I said “I was so pleased to read the news of your return and then of the decision of the court to dismiss the false charge of subversion.” He smiled a rather crooked smile considering the state of his face that had suffered in the bombing. It was a warm smile, never the less. We were able to play catch up for fifteen minutes before the first phone interruption. When he placed the phone in the cradle, I explained my status as a tourist, hiding my position as a journalist.” I am available to help you leak any information to the Times or any of the press, since I’m just a friendly visit from abroad.” He laughed “It won’t take them long to challenge that. You should hear from them probably within an hour of your leaving this office.” When he hung up from another call, he invited me to lunch at his home the next day. I knew it was time to bring the chat to an end. I stood and asked “Jovito” as he had insisted I call him, do you think I can get an interview with Mrs. Aquino or Mr. Laurel?” He laughed “I was waiting for you to ask, I will leave a coded message at you r hotel with the times. Both will have to be brief since we are at the eleventh hour of the election.” “Thank you. I can get a lot of information within a fifteen minute span. I already have a lot of back ground from our records. Shall I meet you here for lunch tomorrow?” “Yes, that will be fine.” Mickey and I met in my room for coffee in order to on a strategy that we hoped would keep the Marcos people knowing that I 318 was working. Mickey outlined a simple plan. “Go where you must and I will follow, always within twenty or thirty feet. There is no place where my camera will be useless, although I, too, must be discreet. I promised Freddie that I would be here to protect you.” On my way out, I stopped by the hotel desk to see if I had any messages. The clerk handed me a note that said “A at six am.” I took that to mean, Mrs. Aquino at six tomorrow at her office. I spent the next several hours roaming the streets, casually conversing with shoppers as to their attitudes toward the coming election. Of the sixteen conversations, only two expressed strong support for President Marcos. Three refused to chat. A few hesitatingly indicated that their vote would go to Mrs. Aquino while most were hesitant to answer my question. In order to understand the meaning, I pressed one much older gentleman who finally admitted that it was dangerous to say that one would vote against the President. I presented myself at the Aquino headquarters at a few minutes before six the next morning. After a quick verification of my identity I was ushered into Mrs. Aquino’s office. She was standing and shook my hand while bestowing a warm smile. Without any preliminaries, she said “I am sorry that you were not able to connect with Ninoy all those years ago. Jovito told me of your attempt and your presence next to the stage during the bombing.” “I am sorry, too. I have heard and read so much that speaks so highly of him.” The door opened and juice, coffee and rolls were rolled n on a trolley. We took seats next to the trolley. 319 “Please call me Corizon. We have a brief time so we should begin. All questions are in order. .” “I have studied as much written material of your life and activities to this point so I have a few questions that I would like to put in my profile for the New York Times. Please tell me your initial plans when you take office.” She burst out laughing. “My dear, I love your optimism, even more your approval of my seeking the office. Thank you.” I was blushing and said. “Perhaps I should not let my feelings show, but I have many reasons to dislike Mr. Marcos, but one stands out. He believes that a woman’s place is to the bedroom or kitchen and that attitude is not one I can abide.” Corazon laughed and said “I agree and I believe that has cost him a great many votes. Now, to answer your question. I will urge a change in the constitution that will limit the powers of the presidency, return to a bicameral form of government and seek legislation that centers on human and civil right. These are the things that Marcos changed to use for his power grab and corrupt leadership during the last fourteen years.” I was righting furiously as she passionately and rapidly said those words. She continued on with her reasoning I then asked “What other problems will face you as the new president?” “I will have to deal with the Muslim secessionists and the communists who present a real challenge to any administration. A really major problem is our economy. We are bankrupt due in part to a spending spree and to some extent to the moneys that Marcos has hidden for his own use.” 320 The door opened, Corizon nodded to the person at the door. She turned to me. “We have only a minute more. My next appointment has arrived.” I asked “What will you do in the event that Marcos and his party succeed in stealing the election with the usual fraudulent actions.” She grinned. “There are a few options available. I also believe that people like you will help us uncover and publicize that.” She stood, shook my hand. “Thank you and please watch your back. His spies are everywhere and he will expel you if he finds out you are really a working journalist and not just a tourist. I would not be surprised that your visit here is being discussed at the “gestapo”, my name for the secret police, headquarters.” Her prediction turned out to be correct. At nine o’clock, while Mickey and I were finishing breakfast at the hotel dining room two burly government agents, of some sort, approached our table, took seats without being invited. The less offensive looking one said. “Ms. Cheka, you need to answer some questions.” “I don’t understand the word “need” but I will be happy to speak with you if you can tell me why I should be speaking with strangers.” He flushed a bit and spoke in a softer tone. “Sorry, I should have introduced us. We are from the internal national security police force. My name is Lara and this is Forana.” “Thank you. This is my brother, Mickey: 321 “We know. He is a photographer for the New York Times and you are a reporter for the same newspaper.” “That is not quite correct but what is your question?” “Why did you not notify us when you arrived that you were here as a Times reporter? I have authority to arrest you for lying to the immigration officer.” “Are you making an assumption that I am an employee of the Times? If so, let me correct you. I retired officially some time ago, but they do take a story from me if I pick up something of interest My brother tells me that the Times has a rather large contingent here, but I know none of them except by reputation.” In a rather belligerent tone he asked “Are you telling me you have no contact with their office here.” I put on an air of indignantly. “Of course not. I am here as a tourist but Mickey is here officially.” I sounded more assured than I felt. With a smirk he said “I don’t believe you. I was informed that you had an early morning visit with Mrs. Aquino. What would a tourist be doing visiting with a woman running for the presidency of our country?” I spoke with a soft tone of complete assurance saying “Cory and I are personal friends, having met when she and her husband were in the states. She had a few minutes before the start of her busy day and I wanted to renew our friendship and offer my personal condolences.” 322 I watched carefully for his reaction, hoping he bought the big lie. He seemed to accept me at face value but said. “That doesn’t seem right but it will have to do. Just remember, that we will be watching your actions.” I rose and said. “That is not what I expected from a government that is advertising for tourists, especially those from those countries who are your closest friends. Perhaps, I should leave and finish my trip elsewhere, maybe Australia.” He did not back off. We are aware that you plan to visit the Salonga home today. Why would you do that?” “Why not? We were both injured in that bombing at the Plaza and have stayed friends. I have never had the pleasure of meeting his wife. Why is that a problem for the government?” “It just is. Remember. You have been warned.” The two of them rose and departed. I let out a deep sigh when they were gone, Mickey said “That was not unsuspected and he tried to act civilly but he means it. You will have to be very circumspect, Cathy.” “I agree and will cancel my request for an interview with the VP candidate, Laurel. I am sure I will be under surveillance for the next couple of days. Maybe with some questions I write out for you, the interview can be done between you and Mr. Laurel.” Typical of Mickey, he grinned. “A profile by MC instead of CC: Good. If you mean to avoid his profile anti-Marcos leaders, then I can let you roam free while I search out some special shots.” 323 “Please, little brother. I promise to stay out of trouble. In fact, I don’t think there is much to do until the day after the election. Regardless of the winner, there will be big problems.” “Meaning what.” “My gut tells me that Aquino will pull more votes even with all the shenanigans that the Marcos folks will pull. Marcos will declare him the victor as will her. I think you need to be ready with the camera for the rioting protests that will ensue..: “You do believe that? Yes, I can see it in your eyes and, sis, I trust your gut.” On Election Day, I decided to observe the action at one of the voting sites in a poorer section of Manila. I would have preferred to be in one of the provinces. Jovito had told me that the Marcos attempt to influence the ballot count would be in the poorer provinces where the official observers were spread thin. Disguised as a Filipino matron on a shopping tour I spent two hours near one polling place. I saw five different males and three females who forced the registrars to give them extra ballots when they registered. They seemed to have a number of registration forms so that the clerks had no option. I wished I were close enough to hear the conversation. I moved to another location, about twelve city blocks away and got up my courage to stand closer to the registration desks and could hear the threatening tone of the males who were demanding extra ballots to take into the booth. Suddenly a rough 324 hand grabbed my left shoulder. “What are you doing here, lady” You are not Filipina.” He lowered his hand to my bicep, took a firm grip that really hurt like hell and marched me away. My thoughts were mixed, wondering where we were headed. An alley opened up about thirty yards ahead. He dragged me to the opening and stopped. .“ Move your ass, lady and don’t let me see you in this area again.” Meanwhile Mickey, dressed as a poor Filipino, was discreetly shooting pictures of similar actions at eight different polls during the entire day. He had snap shots of thugs forcing voters to hand over their identification papers to his cohorts and threatening the clerks to keep their mouths shut or else. He finally quit when one of the thugs guessed that he was not what he seemed and started toward Mickey with a leather black jack. Mickey turned tail and outran the thug. I had opted for brief stays at two other polling sites where I watched some toughs forcing people to leave the long lines, threatening them in case they returned. I took out her small hand-held camera that Mickey had given me. I began shooting a rapid series of pics that would clearly show the display of violence. As one of the toughs looked my way, I dropped my hand in the pocket of my skirt, hiding the camera and casually strolled away. We met for dinner at seven, went to my room where Mickey and I typed up their notes for delivery to Salonga’s office. Jovito, tired and sweaty, gave us a smile when we handed him the notes, and really laughed when Mickey promised to deliver pictures in the morning. He invited us to sit and have some iced tea. 325 Mickey’s story was graphic, telling how he saw Marcos thugs forcing voters away from the polls. Jovito told us of a provincial governor being murdered. He had been a strong supporter of, Mrs. Aquino. “We have statements from six U.S. observers who condemn the action of the government employees at various election sites.” He asked “Based on what you have seen, how would you see things developing during the next few days?” I responded. “The national committee will declare Marcos the victor by a wide margin. A great number of citizens will take exception and probably take their protests to the street.” Two days later the government’s election committee declared Marcos to be the victor it was reported that thirty poll computer technicians resigned as a protest against the poll-rigging in favor of Marcos. Three days afterwards a special committee for monitoring the polls declared victory for Aquino and accused Marcos supporters of wide spread fraud and coercion of some voters in the provinces by threatening violence. Angry crowds bearing anti –government posters and signs filled the streets and the Plaza. The mood was dark and menacing. I decided to stay indoors as I thought of my promise to Jack. Both candidates were inaugurated at two different sites. I covered the Aquino event while Mickey took in the Marcos event. When we compared notes, Mickey reported that the crowd at the 326 Marcos event seemed rather small for such a major event. I reported a massive crowd at the Aquino inauguration. Everything was in a state of flux until the Parliament was convened to announce the final results. I attended the session of Parliament and watched thirty members walk out when the Parliament declared Marcos to be the winner. The news brought strong criticism in local quarters and from many nations who had observers present during Election Day. The Roman Catholic Conference of Bishops decried the actions at the polls despicable. I was present at the rally, where Mrs. Aquino, every bit the leader, called, at which she asked the people to strike and boycott all the products and services of the corporations owned by cohorts of Marcos. She was articulate and passionate as she reeled of the names of the firms. After the rally she retired to a convent to meditate, having declared herself the winner. No one was paying attention to me in the midst of this strife. Mickey and I were working six and eighteen hour days soaking up the news of all the happenings .Nothing seemed to be settled. Frustration and chaos reigned until the twenty- second Huge crowds gathered for a demonstration at the office of the President. Hand printed signs were prevalent e.g. “Marcos Go’ and “Down with Marcos” or “The Hell with Marcos” and others. Some were in Filipino and many in English. The crowd was quickly growing angrier and larger Police and military personnel in riot gear faced the menacing crowd. Threats and abusive language filled the air but no physical violence erupted 327 A group of disgruntled reformist officers, led by the Defense Minister and a General Ramos surprised the nation with a statement of defection from President Marcos and with a strong belief that Corizon Aquino had won the election. The Cardinal Archbishop of Manila, Reverend Sin, urged the people to troop to Camp Aqunaldo where the Defense Minister and the General were holding operations in support of the reformist soldiers. Mrs. Aquino joined them Three days later on the twenty-fifth, Corizon Aquino was formally inaugurated as the first woman chief executive of the nation and on the Asia continent. That day is celebrated as the day of the People Power Revolution. We found out later that Marcos had called Juan Enrile, the founder and head of the People Power Movement who granted the Marcos family safe passage out of the country and then to Hawaii. Mickey and I along with the other staffers of the Times .were pounding out and filing their stories. No longer subject to the scissors of the censors, filed thousands of words and hundreds of photos to their respective departments. The two of us went to the Manila station of the Tiimes to meet the other staffers and rejoice with them that a twenty year reign of martial law was now history. Mickey followed through on is interview with Laurel, the new vice-president and got a byline for his profile, which ran a week after we got home. We flew home on the twenty-ninth of February to be greeted into the loving arms of bot of our families. 328 Chapter 21. I spent the next several months taking a long rest. Spring came a little early making my walks in the park very pleasant. I walked over to the libraries at Columbia to catch up on my reading of the business journals and some of the foreign papers from London, Paris and Moscow. I spent some time with Diane and took Mickey’s girls to the movies. I spent some time learning to cook and had Mickey and Julie and some other friends to dinner. Frannie and I took in tree performances of the Metropolitan Opera. That summer, Diane joined Jack and me for a visit to Coalton. I did a little research on women’s issues for Frannie and Elsie at the Times magazine, during the late summer month I went back to work at the Times on September 1st. Later that season I noticed that the Washington Post business news ran a small story of news about failing savings and loan firms. It wasn’t much but it got my nose to twitching, as the saying goes. I was in Washington researching a story and had a date for lunch at the Willard Hotel. As I was leaving the dining room I passed a booth, I got a smile from one of the occupants, Fred Fox, a congressman from Long Island. I returned his smile and paused to take in the others at the table. The next day I walked into Frannie’s office for a chat just before leaving that afternoon. “Frannie, there is quiet buzz about the 329 S&L business in the Post and I thought perhaps we could regroup the old snoop team. What do you think?” “What do you have?” “ I read a small story in the Post and then ran into Fred Fox at lunch with two other congressmen and James Kingston, head of a large savings group in the Midwest. “ “If it can produce anything like the last time, I’m all for it. I’m heading to a meeting with Mac where his boss will be present. Let’s talk in the morning.” Frannie called me that evening. “Cathy, any chance of meeting me at seven thirty tomorrow morning? I have to fly to Washington a little later.” “That’s fine with me.” “I’ll have a continental breakfast set out. See you then.” As we started with juice, Frannie said “It’s arranged. The business department is putting an extra writer looking for stories of unusual failures in the thrift industry. They will welcome some special help in their investigation.” “Will Ron be working with me again?” “Yes, just as before. We all feel that you can uncover some real fraud or influence peddling with one or more of our representatives either at a federal or a state level.” “Well, that would emphasize the value of our earlier series on the potential for fraud with reduced regulation.” 330 “Finished your breakfast I have to run in order to make the shuttle from La Guardia to DC”. Ron called me at eight thirty. "I hear we are working together again.” “Yes. Are you free to start today?” “Yep. Ten o’clock okay with you? Is there a desk?” “Ten is fine and I’ll have your old set up ready by this afternoon.” By ten fifteen we were deep into conversation. “You are aware that the passage of the Tax Reformat poses serious problems for the savings and loan firms. Real estate values are falling, demand shriveling since the big boys have lost one of their major tax shelters.” “Oh, yes. The bill has significantly decreased the value of many such investments. With a sharp decrease in demand for loans, cash flow eases up and executives will be scrambling to protect their assets.” “Chaos is the fruitful basis for shenanigans’. I think we ought to start looking for one of the larger S&L’s whose recent balance sheets warrant a deeper look and then for some regulators or elected officials with some shadows in their background.” “Sounds right. How do we divide up to start? You were the primary financial researcher last time.” 331 “I’ll be happy to start there while you start digging into the people angle. Let’s validate and footnote every finding and take our time.” We gathered for an update on Friday afternoon. Ron said “I have something of interest, a character with some doubtful things in his past.” “Tell me.” “Congressman Mike Fingers from Michigan has been looked at twice for influence peddling in the House but nothing developed from the investigations. Mike is from Detroit.” “That may be worth our effort. One of four larger S&L’s whose recent balance sheets trend weaker, the assets less than solid, is located within his district.” “Any ideas?” “Are you free to spend some time in Michigan, poke around the company? I’ll bet that will find some dirt on Finger?” “No problem. I’ll be in Detroit early Monday I am also exploring some abuse of the Brokered Deposit program. Eagle S&L in Detroit and E.C.Jones Company in Chicago. Eagle is a one branch small thrift whose officers are living it up big time with some shady borrowers.” “Okay. I won’t ask where you got your info but I’ll dig her while you spend some time in Washington looking for associates of Finger.” 332 “Cathy. Working with you is a pleasure. Do you think you can finagle this into something permanent?” “I like you, too. We’ll see.” Olga was out for the evening. She had left a casserole and a green salad for the two of us. When we had our fill, Jack asked “Coffee and dessert?” “I think coffee only, dear. When he had served the coffee, Jack said. “Honey, I have some news.” The tone of his voice told me it was not the kind of news I wanted to hear. “I am being transferred to Washington.” Suddenly, the meal I had just finished felt like a leaden weight in the pit of my stomach. I fought to hold back the tear that had developed just behind my eyelid. My mind raced with the changes that were challenging the comfort of our present situation. I felt the upset rising and was about to blurt out my resentment but caught myself in time. I was not going to fall into the trap as I had when Jack had to take the Israel position. I nodded but could not speak. The subject put a pall on me for the weekend. In order to shake it off, we took a walk through Riverside Park, went to the movies, had dinner out but could not take went to our minds off the coming discussion with Diane. We talked of the challenges like moving Diane in the midst of her high school years, the kind of wrenching from her friends and 333 those special teachers. The move for Diane was the most serious challenge, even more so than my work. Diane breezed in about four and with joy and enthusiasm told us about walking on the beach, the barbecue on the beach on Saturday evening and Smutty, the boy who lived next door. Her excitement was infectious and had us asking more questions. When she had gone to her room to unpack, Jask and I huddled. He said “You know that this decision also affects Olga. Maybe it would be wise to call a family conference in order to introduce the subject. “After a moment of mulling it over, I agreed. We decided it would be better if Jack introduced the subject. Over desserts he said “Gang, we are facing a major change and therefore we need a family conference.” Out of the mouth of a babe came the words “Are you talking about moving to some foreign country? I think that would be cool.” “You do?” “Sure. I’m getting tired of the way most of the kids at Miss Marple’s school are behaving these days. I was going to ask you about changing schools next year.” I saw Jack let out a sigh of relief. “Honey, the move will mean a new school but it will not be in a foreign country. It will be in one of the suburbs of Washington D.C.” “Well, that won’t be as exciting but it will be graceful way of separating from some of those snobs. Can I go to a regular public school instead of a fancy private school?” “We can search together for a community where they have quality public secondary schools. That should be fun, to have a research project like that.” 334 Jack stepped in. “I can begin my duties any time and the firm will put us up in a hotel suite while we search the area.” I turned to Olga. After a look at her frown. I said “Olga, I gather this is not good timing. Has Johann asked you to marry him or are you engaged. I don’t see a ring.” “I think he is about ready. We have been to see his family several times.” Again, wisdom from the young one. “The threat of your leaving will help him offer you a ring.” She giggled and so did Olga. “It seems like I will not be going with you. Johan has a good enough job and like most traditional Slovak men; he will not want me to work.” Diane asked “Mom, how about your job? Don’t you have to work in New York with your job on the magazine section?” I had given a lot of thought to that subject over the weekend. “Yes, but I think it’s time for a change. I can work as a free-lance investigative reporter, if I can’t arrange something with the times.” “That’s good. How soon will you know?” “I’m not sure. Besides, we have other family decisions to make, like, will we sell the apartment or rent it out. Things will work out now that the decision is made.” I asked Frannie for a chance to talk after our Monday afternoon staff meeting. When we were seated in her office she said “The look on your face says I am not going to like this conversation.” “Probably not. No matter how this ends up, our long time relationship is about to change.” I spent the next twenty minutes telling her the news of our move to Washington. 335 “Oh hell, why at this moment? The big boys and I have been noodling about the possibility of your becoming my deputy, in training for replacing me within the next eighteen months.” My heart did flip-flops. I found myself white knuckled with closed fists struggling with the opportunity lost. Frannie looked concerned and poured me a glass of water. She said “That was stupid of me. I should have said nothing about that. I know that Jack has made sacrifices for you and there is no way you will fail to do the same for him.” I finally was able to say something. “Of course, I have to do that. He has been so unselfish and encouraging all these years.” Well, I will see to it that you are not severed from the Times. We can work something out and I am still going to benefit in some way. You are just too damned valuable.” “Let me do some behind the scenes work during the next twenty four hours and meet with you tomorrow at three.” “Thank you, my friend.” We hugged and I said goodbye and left. I knew that at no time could I ever share with Jack the plans that Frannie had made for me. A year after these events I was to find out about the decision makers who helped to formulate my future. Bill, my first boos and now heading the city desk, Freddie of the international desk and Mac, who headed the National department together with Frannie, met late for six hours. Mac had said outright “She has come so far in two decades and contributed so much that we cannot take a chance she may wind up working for the Post or some news service in Washington.” Frannie told me that they spent the first half hour extolling my contributions and my skills investigating as well as my 336 interactions with people. She told me that I probably would have turned beet red if I had been there. Frannie said in that later conversation. “We were determined to keep; you and to meet your need. We were on the phone to some higher ups and to the chiefs of several departments. We asked the head of personnel to join us. “ It seems that from the outset there was no question that the head of our Washington bureau would be more than pleased to have me but that meant some personnel sniffing or transfers. The only thing that Frannie told me the morning after the meeting was that they had worked late and had some options for me to consider. I had this sense of joy when she said options. That could only mean that I would still be with the Times. “Sig Sayers, head of the Washington Bureau is willing to have you on hi staff. In fact, he hopes that pleases you because he is ready to play musical chair to fit you in” “You said options?” “Yes, all of them have to do with the Washington Bureau, full time or part time. They can use you as a senior reporter working with congress, as an investigative reporter or an inside job at the Bureau if you prefer.” “Wow.” “I agree. The only sad thing is that I will miss you terribly. Someday, not today, I’ll fill you in on the details of our meeting last night. All I need now is an affirmative shake of the head. You and Sig can work out the details when you and he meet. He hopes you can fly down later in the day on the shuttle. He can meet you at the airport so you needn’t worry about transport.” “That means I can come home tonight? “I asked. “Yep.” 337 I called Jack from La Guardia .He promised to share the news with Diane and Olga. “Welcome to D.C. Cathy. I am pleased to meet you, finally. I hope we can make a happy home for you.” We huddled in the United Red Carpet room, working to establish an agreement. Two hours later I was on the return flight, having a clear picture of my choices. Sig and I finally agreed that the starting place would be my covering the Senate as one of two reporters. I would be looking for that news that the Senate prefers to keep tucked out of sight and perhaps doing some profiles either of Senators or some of the lobbyists who work full time with the Senate. Jack took up residence at a hotel in Washington on April 20 , commuting home on the weekends. Diane’s graduation ceremony was held on May 13th. The next evening we bid a temporarary good bye to Olga who would stay in the apartment until we settled in the D.C. area and put up the apartment for lease. Diane spent the first two days visiting the Smithsonian while I met the press corps at the Senate building and learned the ropes. She decided to enroll in a business school for six weeks to study typing, shorthand and basic bookkeeping. We spent evenings and the next several weekends house hutting in McLean and Silver Springs as well as apartment hunting in the city. On the second Monday of June I had a call from Ron Mick, my sidekick on the S&L stories. “Cathy, I just picked up a squeak that Safe and Secure Saving and Loan from Las Vegas is in hot water. There is a quiet rumor than the regulators are thinking of beginning an investigation, but for some reason they have delayed.” “Do I take it that you think someone is getting to the regulators?” th 338 “That’s what it smells like. I have been checking their financials and I see patterns that are reminiscent of what we found at Eagle.S&L.” “Thanks. I’ll try to find out who is their lobbyists and maybe have him tailed for a bit. I’ll get back to you. The next day I asked Sig for a meeting that included Cissy White our reporter at the House. I laid out the details of Ron’s phone call and suggested my approach to get the name and description of the lobbyist for Safe and Secure as well as the Chairman and the President. “If there is pressure on the FSLBB staffers, it is most likely coming from someone whose campaign coffers include big money from Safe and Secure.” I’ll say this for Sig. No grass grows under his feet, “I’ll have our financial whiz bang working with your associate, Ron. You both will have names and either a description or a photo of any we suspect to be players in this game if there is one.” Three days later with names, pictures and bios on three Senators and three congressmen I made reservation for lunch at the Willard Hotel, a favorite for lobbyists and their lambs No luck from my first foray, but I had a great lunch and a hefty expense chit for accounting. My luck changed on the third try. I saw our lobbyist, the president of Safe and Secure and the junior senator from Nevada being escorted to a booth. I asked the maître d’ if I could the table just outside the booth while I waited for an imaginary guest to arrive. I was near enough to catch the tone of the discussions but only a few words now and then. I heard enough to know that the senator was heading for a long weekend in Bermuda on a private jet and something about a scholarship to some university. Cissy breezed into my office the next morning with her report, seeing the chairman and an unidentified party meeting with 339 two congressmen from Arizona. “I couldn’t hear much since I could not get a table nearby but I was next to them, standing in line, waiting for cabs. I definitely heard the unidentified party saying “Have great time in Hawaii. Be sure to set up a date with your friend at the FHLB as soon as you get back, no later than the twentieth.” The two of us met at ten with Sig to give him an update. He listened patiently and smiled. “Ten minutes ago I had an anonymous phone call telling me to keep Cissy away from those congressmen. I guess she is too well known.” “How do you want us to precede, boss?” “Cathy, you have a drinks date at five fifteen with a friend who happens to be a third level exec at the Federal Home Loan Bank, which organization has the responsibility for making sure that all S&L’s operate within the rules and rags. He will be expecting you, a new arrival in town, and answer any questions just as though he and I were meeting. He may know something about what is happening in the FHLB in the Mountain Region.” Guy Sloan was about sixty, handsome gray haired gentleman, who been with the bank for over thirty years, serving at three regional banks as well as the D.C. office. After a few minutes of getting to know each other, he said “I only have about thirty minutes. Sig filled me in on your investigation. Let me tell you what I know and then take your questions.” “Great. That should save time.” “Our staff was due to begin an audit on May 26th but the big boss at the regional bank asked them to delay thirty days. He did this at the request of the junior senator from Nevada and a congressman from Arizona who had visited him on the twenty fourth. The boss left for a three week vacation on the twenty sixth, leaving word that he would initiate the audit upon his return.” “Any chance he was bought off?” 340 “I doubt it. Joe is straight forward and in my opinion not for sale.” “What are some reasons he might have for such a last minute delay?” “Just between us, he is not the brightest or the strongest local president. He might easily kowtow to a big boy like the senator, at least for a little while.” Any other reason?” “He may want to be close at hand during the audit so he delayed pending a prior planned vacation. Knowing of your penchant for digging, Ms.Cheka, I think you might be able to verify that vacation timing, while I can only speculate.” He smiled and I returned the smile Looking at his watch, he said “I really should run. If I hear anything more, I’ll be happy to buy you a drink, but I will need your home phone. I wouldn’t dare call your office.” Thank you, Mr. Sloan.” “My pleasure will be doubled if you find any rats in the rug. Here is my unlisted second home phone number.” Cissy stayed close to her now identified lobbyist working for Safe and Secure. On her behalf I was able to discover that he also worked for two other thrifts including the largest in the country. Sig had another call implying a threat to Cissy’s health if she didn’t keep her distance from Mr. Goodenough In the meantime she had snapped a photo of him and made a copy for me. The very day after I had the photo I saw Mr. Goodenough in the company of the well know S&L financier from the west coast whose holdings were coming under scrutiny from the regulators. I watched as they were escorted to a booth and decided to wait to see if until any guests arrived. I sat at the bar sipping a white wine and finally noticed a senator from Indiana and one from New Mexico 341 come in together. I hastily walked over to the hostess stand in time to hear them ask for Mr. Goodenough. My nose was really twitching. I called Guy Sloan that evening. “Guy, this is Cathy Cheka. Do you have a minute, unrelated directly to our prior conversation?” “Absolutely. Shoot.” “Heard anything surfaced recently about senators visiting with your bosses or the board? “Why do you ask?” I happened by chance to see two senators meet with a Mr. Goodenough and the chair of the largest S&L in the country.” “Very interesting. The answer is yes. Over a period of a month we have had at least five visits from a handful of senators.” “Any audit delays in that direction?’ Yep.” “I’ll be damned. Thank you.” The next morning conference brought some bad news.Cissy reported. “I walked by Goodenough to grab a cab He was getting into a large Lincoln with tinted windows all around. Four or five minutes later, my cab was roughly bumped into the rear bumper when we stopped at the next light. The strong jolt, snapping my neck. My cabbie got out yelling, ready to talk with the driver of the Lincoln but could not get any response. The driver’s side window stayed closed. The light turned green and since the cab was not damaged, the driver drove on.” Sig was cussing a blue streak. “Gutsy. They must have some real power. Cissy, I’m pulling you off for a while and ask your buddy, Max, to take over. Introduce him to Cathy and the two of you brief him on what’s doing.” Starting the nineteenth of June, Max and I were on the heels of our lobbyist friend and sure enough saw him pick up our two 342 representatives in front of the Rayburn building and drive them to the offices of FHLB and drop them off. All we could do was observed and take pictures. The next day Guy Sloan called me to say that the board was debating the issue of delaying the audit for another month. In a huddle with Sid and Cissy I recommended we go with a story of what we have observed with a comment about the previous delay. That should roil the waters a bit.” Sig turned to Cissy. “I have an idea but it gives you no public credit. If it is okay with you I would like Cathy to run this under her magazine column of the past as “Profiles by CC”. This will be a profile of a bank instead of an individual.” Cissy agreed. The feature ran on the following Sunday and indeed roiled the waters water of the nation’s capital. The phones rang off the hook” as the saying goes. Senators, congressmen, adminstrators and two cabinet officers, were complaining but no one trying to force a retraction. There was no call or subsequent communication from the President’s office. The president of the regional bank had no choice except to go with the audit without delay The following Tuesday the editorial staff ran editorials relating back to my earlier stories on S&L’s and the prior editorial on the subject, followed on Wednesday with an editorial calling for quick reform. There was a hint of another large thrift going bankrupt and might have without the influence of certain elected officials. On Friday, the Times ran my report with a photograph I had taken of the two senators along the lobbyist and CEO of the largest S&L in the nation. I wrote no commentary, letting the report and photo do the speaking? The feedback on that story was dead silence from Washington but lots of outrage from many readers. 343 Three months later the attorney general’s office moved in and brought executives and two board members of Safe and secure to trial for fraud and racketeering. Never the less, the payout to depositors cost the government almost a billion dollars covering the insured depositors ’losses. For months on end I prowled the halls and chambers of tee Hart Senate building hoping to smell out some work being done to curtail the kind of losses to investors. I followed closely the story of the large S&L Ron Micha, my earlier partner from the business department kept me posted on many of the details of some of their risky investments. For some unknown reason the FHLBB executive deferred judgment on the matter, and his successor was more sympathetic to a company which should have been in the middle of an investigation. The Senate and the House seemed to ignore all the signs pointing to more disasters except that several years later, several senators would be rebuked to various degrees by the Senate Ethics Committee. I did cover the progress of the financial reform bills during the 1989 session. The old adage about locking the barn door after he horse escaped applied to the congress who took action after it cost the nation more than 125 billion dollars. 344 345 Chapter 22. In August of that first year, we purchased a four bedroom house in McLean, Virginia. Diane entered the public high school and soon had half dozen girlfriends and some teen age boys hanging around. She stayed with the family of one of her friends after school until one of us picked her up. Their home was only five doors from ours. Believe it or not, I finally learned to drive and got my driver’s license at age forty five. Being a Manhattanize I never had need for a driver’s license. I was not a welcome member of the press corps with some of the senators. It took almost a year for most to understand that I was interested in wrong-doing, not trying to roast every elected official. I did manage to write a number of senatorial profiles. Like a bulldog, I followed every story I could find on the thrift disasters. One morning in early September, just after Jack had driven away, the phone rang just as I was reentering the house. I dashed to the phone, a bit breathless. “This is Cathy.” A pleasant female voice asked “Would you please hold?” “Cathy.” I did not have to hear his name. It was my old and trusted friend from the International department. “Hi, Freddie. This is a surprise.” “I know and it is great to hear your voice. How are things in and near Foggy Bottom?” “Work is getting harder. Jack and I keep thinking I ought to retire. We just bought a new house and the need to make that our home I challenging. That’s it in a nut shell but you have something on your mind.” 346 “I never could keep you guessing, smartie. My question is whether you might be up to a little excitement for a trip to Eastern Europe?” “Wow. You are talking excitement. Where are you suggesting? Poland?” “I am thinking Czechoslovakian.” We are set in Poland and a few other spots but are shorthanded in Czechoslovakia. Things are stirring. “Do you think Jack would let you go? We both know there is some risk.” “When would you need to know and when would I have to arrive?” “Of course, I need to know ASAP. We would like to have you on scene by October first. Before you ask, all parties have agreed your current boss and the department heads here. In fact, we are in session here and everyone sends their love.” All right, Fred. I will call you in the morning.” Needless to say, that I was in turmoil. The assignment was a thrilling challenge but getting Jack to agree was even more daunting. His love and caring would make him start to dig in his heels but after tears and expressions of concern, he would probably give in. He had promised those many years ago that my work was also high on the priority list in our marriage.” At least, that was my thinking as I prepared all day the manner of my presentation to Jack after dinner tonight. It went as I predicted. We were curled up on the sofa after watching the ten o’clock news, much of which centered on events in Eastern Europe. Before and since the fall of the Berlin wall, the Eastern bloc of Russian-dominated communism was showing cracks Sharp changes were occurring almost daily in East Germany, Poland and other countries. 347 I pulled away from Jack’s arms so I could look into his eyes. “Honey, I had a call from New York this morning.” “Freddie?” I gasped. “Yes.” “I’m not surprised. Where does he want you? Germany? Poland?” Hungary?” “Czechoslovakia. But I don’t understand you.” “Dear, your body language for weeks has been saying. This assignment is less than exciting. You have mentioned retirement, probably because you didn’t want to ask me to let you go to some new war zone.” I broke into tears without knowing why but I did know. He was the dreamboat who would do what would be the right thing for me. His love was utterly without reservation. . Jack reached for a hankie to wipe my cheeks. “Of course I will let you go. I don’t have to repeat the words I have spoken so often when you were headed into some perilous assignment. You know how deeply I love you and how I will worry, but this is the Cathy that I love and married.” He pulled me back into his arms for a long time. I. has no idea how long finally I was able to tell me the little I knew of the plans. “I guess that I will have to go to New York for a briefing and probably leave from there. We have about three weeks before I leave. As one might expect from two long time lovers, our love making was special and ever so tender before we found sleep. The next three week was intense. I spent three hours a day practicing my Russian with a tutor that the Times had hired for me. She also spike Czech thus helped me tune up with that language skill with its variations from Slovak. 348 I arrived in Prague on October 3rd.After a rigorous unwelcome from the officials at the airport, I walked out of the immigration office to be met by a tall blond young woman about twenty years old or so. “I am Marta Voinovich. Are you Cathy Cheka?” “Yes.” “I do some errands for Sam Baker, who works for the New York Times. I will be happy to take you to his office if you will allow me to do so.” I really had no choice but I considered it unlikely that it was some ruse on the part of the government who had no love for American journalists. “I would appreciate your help” She. Grabbed the heavier of my two bags and hailed a cab. Sam was out of the office but arrived about fifteen minutes after my arrival. I was sipping some tea that Marta had prepared. He breezed in, tossed his hat on top of his desk, took off his light top coat and hung it on the back of the door. “Welcome, Cathy. You come with a strong recommendation and a reputation for sound reporting for twentyyears plus. You are more than welcome.” “I hope I can be helpful to you.” “You will be more than helpful. How do you feel about working with some underground leaders?” “Wherever you think best. I will be happy to follow our lead.” “I’ve been splitting my time between working with the underground and reporting what the government people who are dishing out and reading between the lines. You won’t be able to write all your stories about your findings since many are secret. Whatever they execute will be big news when available to the public and the world. Your material will be really useful when the revolution is overt.” 349 How do I go about finding these leaders? Do I find them on my own or do you have some leads “I have great contacts with whom I have been meeting for the past six months. You will meet one of the lieutenants at breakfast at six tomorrow morning. He is an accountant and absolutely above suspicion although deeply involved in the planning.” “Good. How about housing?” “We have you booked into a hotel that is mostly staffed with lackeys of the government. We do that intentionally to indicate that we have nothing to hide. The administration, surprisingly, loves the foreign press. They believe, probably correctly, that they are the most benevolent rulers of the Warsaw pact nations. Never the less they will check you out very professionally. The waiters in the dining room will be listening for any treasonous conversations. Your room will be bugged. I am putting you there so that the government will find you to be what you claim, a journalist, not a spy. The only thing they will uncover is what you and I want them to find.” “I feel more like a spy than a journalist.” Sam laughed. “In a way, you are although you are not asked to give away government secrets. I smiled and Sam and Marta grinned. We were on the same page. Sam went on. “Marta is your contact and protector. She knows her way around and while covertly watched by the commies, she appears vary clean to them. She is more than a pretty girl, a dedicated revolutionary and, yes, carries a gun.” The breakfast was a congenial affair that included general conversation about current affairs here and in other countries, the kind of conversation that might be held by any citizen and a friend. 350 Jan Kovak an accountant for a Russian energy firm met us in a small café around the corner from the hotel. It was six o’clock and hour before he reported for work. Sam prepared me for the meeting. “Jan, who is an accountant by day, is the coordinator of planning for a large group of cells here in Prague and well beyond into the small towns and villages. It is my hope that he will invite you to sit in and observed.” From the moment I greeted him speaking Czech, properly accented, he smiled and the warmth he exuded told me we would become friends despite a generation of difference in our ages. After the preliminaries he said. “I am delighted that you also speak Russian. Two of our informants are Russian and speak or understand either Czech or Slovak. You can be useful as an interpreter to help clarify their information.” The upshot of the meeting was an invitation to come to a meeting the following week. Jan said “The government may have someone following you for a few days’ pay no attention since we will not ask you to meet with us during this probationary time. I would suggest that you ask you concierge for a map of our public transportation system and a street map to know where you are traveling either by foot or in taxis.” Six days after my arrival, I left the Times office and noticed that my tail for the past few days was absent I took a city tram to the corner near the address about eight blocks from the meeting place. It was four thirty in the morning. I had suggested that I walk since it was so close. Jan said “That would arouse the suspicions of the police. The only people walking at that hour are workers returning from or going to work in fact I recommend you dress down when traveling at such odd hours.” 351 I met with Jan’s group almost every other day, mostly for short meetings. The balance of the day I spent chasing down stories assigned by Sam. I began approaching some of the higher officials asking for interviews so that I might submit profiles as I had earlier in my career under the “Profiles by C.C. I had some success only because one of the public relations officers had been an ardent fan of the New York Times when he had served in a consulate in New York City. Since a profile usually meant some detail of the subject’s life and even his or her work. I picked up a few scraps of info accidently escaping my subjects lips. Each of the cell meetings was in a different location and at very strange hours between six in the evening and four in the morning. I was intentionally not invited to several meetings but that was rare. The first meeting consisted of nine members in addition to Jan and me. After brief introductions, they moved directly to the business of the day, sorting memos that had arrived from cells in seventeen suburban communities. Josef, who seemed to be second in command to Jan, summarized the results then said “I think it is fair to say that almost everyone is waiting for instructions. Mihail commented “Then it is time to finalize them with short term and long term plans. My committee is ready to submit plans as requested.” Jan said “Let’s make the only item on our agenda for the next meeting on Friday night. We can meet in the rear storage room of Eduard’s café. Mihail, you and I can meet for lunch for a briefing tomorrow. Meanwhile, Ivan, is there anything you can report from your department?”” 352 “I can assure you that no one in the upper echelons has ever indicated that they are aware of this activity. The KGB and the Czech secret police are more worried about sabotage than demonstrations.” He spoke haltingly but I was able to help him to clarify his intent. Josef said. “I need to leave. It takes me three changes on the tram to get to work.” Jan said ‘Let’s leave by two’s or one’s. Look round before you go out the door.” Jan and I were the last to leave, hoping we appeared to be an older mother and son on the way to work. I was one of the early arrivals for the Friday meeting having had my dinner at the café. I was surprised to find a young woman, a young man and Marta already in the room when I arrived. Marta introduced Petra and Paul as students who were very involved in an organizing student cells at two Prague university locations. Jan called the meeting to order. He turned to me. “Petra and Paul are members of Mikhail’s planning committee and they are the key to our plans.” Mihail then submitted the plans. “Starting the end of this month there will be small demonstrations, absolutely peaceful, with signs only protesting rule by a single party. Some signs will call for a reform to a multi-party system. The gatherings will happen on or near university locations around the country. These groupings will be made up of students. If there are arrests by the police, we do not want fathers or mothers involved and certain not put at risk any one that might cost them their jobs. The pace of the demonstrations and the size will grow day by day for three weeks, at least. We believe from the information we have been receiving that the numbers will begin to swell and cold reach a hundred thousand combined by the end of that period.” 353 I asked “What do want to actually happen as a result of these actions?” Peter responded. “We believe that we will get some real attention from the central government officials if the general public joins in the peaceful demonstrations, perhaps we can achieve a major shift in government behavior.” I couldn’t help but contrast the plans here with the demonstrations during the Vietnam War period in the states. This was being carefully calculated to be peaceful and although passions were high, the action would be cool. Paul reminded the group that there were over one hundred and fifty student cells in Prague and another hundred at the other locations. “I think your estimates are too low.” Jan agreed but reminded the group that it is always better to exceed than to fall short of expectations. We were about to adjourn when Jan asked Petra and Paul if they would ride the tram with me until I reached the hotel and they agreed. About twenty yards short of the hotel entrance a sturdy, dark-suited man stepped out of the shadows and said “Identifications?” Paul whispered to me “Secret police.” I felt a moment of panic. My hands were shaking as I produced the ID that the hotel had given me in lieu of the passport which they were required to hold. The boys had produced student ID’s and stood silently. “What are three doing?” Paul spoke up. "We are escorting this guest who attended our class at the university. We did not think it was safe for her to travel alone at this hour.” His lie was smooth and absolutely believable 354 “You boys go on. I will take charge of the woman.” I had no idea what that meant. Was I being taken someplace for further interrogation?” How did I come to the attentions of the secret police?” I sensed a bit of cold sweat under my arms. My young friends seemed hesitant but the policeman said gruffly “I told you to go.” I could feel my hands getting sweaty and thought I might be developing beads of sweat on my forehead. I was alone and scared. He took hold of my arm and headed for the hotel entrance. The policeman near the door and the doorman both saluted as we entered. When we reached the registration desk, to my surprise, he said to the clerk “Give Mrs. Cheka her room key and said to me. “Have a good evening. It was smart of you to have those young boys accompany you at this hour of the night. He turned and headed for the door. I was absolutely weak-kneed when I entered the elevator and then collapsed into a chair when I got to the room. I spent the last hour writing my notes which I gave to Marta each morning at the office. Our plan was for me to write up the notes and give them to Marta who made sure they were read by Sam to report whatever he chose to get by the censors. Although I knew each day what was happening as I attended the meetings with Jan, it was interesting to see what did get into the local newspapers. There daily brief stories of the police monitoring demonstrations at various university locations, mostly in Prague but occasionally referring to a large demonstration in other cities. The papers were downplaying the size of the gatherings according to our comparisons with our own monitors. Excitement was growing at the central planning meetings. The crowds at the gatherings were growing but continued to be 355 peaceful thus avoiding any arrests. At the meeting on the eleventh of November. Paul reported that over thirty thousand students had demonstrated the day before. On the sixteenth, I delivery a copy of the Times, which contained a profile of the mayor of Prague. He was ecstatic but tried to put on a modest front. I asked him about his feelings about the demonstrations. “I am confident that students will tire and remember that failure to attend classes is detrimental to their education. I am pleased that there have been few if any violent actions.” The next day, on the seventeenth a large student demonstration in central Prague was jamming the streets and sidewalks. Business and traffic came to a halt. Some police must have panicked at the pure size although they later admitted that the demonstration was peaceful. As tensions mounted the crowds got larger, the police began breaking up the gathering and placing students under arrest. The committee’s monitors were having a hard time getting an accurate account of protestors as the crowds swell. They estimated that over 200,000 were present on the nineteenth and approximately a half million on the twentieth. The planning committee was ecstatic. This is beyond our wildest dreams. Marta said “The government was being going crazy. I have a report that the mayor and the chief of police have been summoned by the President.” Jan said “I’m worried. The President may call in the troops that are stationed outside the city. We must alert our people nearby the fort, to let us know if they see any troop movements or tanks starting to warm up.” 356 Marta made a call. A minute later she said “They’re way ahead of us. They have two men loafing about a quarter mile from the front gate of the garrison. All is still quiet.” One of the students was in the corner listening for any radio broadcast that might give a signal from the government, national or local. The mood wavered between joy, excitement and worry. The phone shrilled and Marta answered She turned to Jan. It’s Alexander. He wants to talk to you: “Hello. This is Jan. Yes sir. I understand. Yes I will organize our communicators immediately. Thank you, sir.” He turned toward the rest of us. Mr. .Dubcek expressed his congratulations on the success of our planning and suggests that we call a general strike on the twenty-seventh. He has already received agreement from the other organizations, including the underground.” I had thought we were excited earlier but all hell broke loose with approval. The meeting broke up with everyone moving to some pre-agreed duties to perform. Marta suggested we join in the demonstration where I could interview some of the participants. In the midst of the demonstrations there was a sort of joy. People were confident that some change for the good would come. Every once in a while. A group would burst into song. The police were simply standing on the side lines, some of them smiling at the singing that was taking place. Among my interviewees was .a mother pushing her twins in a double pram, a lawyer and a government clerk. I asked the clerk if she might lose her job. She laughed and said “I am good at my job. They won’t fire me. I’m sure my supervisor is sympathetic even though he dare not be here. 357 Marta took me to a large residence located on the edge of the business district. When we entered, she introduced me to a Mr. Dubcek. “Alexander, meet Cathy Cheka of the New York Times who has been meeting with us for over a month. She expects to write several major pieces when she returns to the states.” He bowed. “I am honored to meet you, Ms. Cheka. Your reputation precedes you. I have had the privilege of reading several of your stories, particularly those about Vietnam and Greece. You are a good journalist and certainly a brave one.” I am sure I blushed and thanked him. “I would be honored if you granted me an interview. “ That would be my pleasure, but may I request a delay until the picture becomes clearer as to the reaction of the government. So far we are pleased that no tanks or soldiers are parading down our boulevards. The general strike took place across the nation for two hours on November 27th. Suddenly, a huge surprise. The very next celebrations were wide spread when the announcement came that the communist party was relinquishing power and dismantling the sing party system for the country. After a brief round of singing and shouting, the crowds grew quiet with uncertainty. Everything was in a hiatus. The President had not vacated his office or resigned. An eerie silence and stillness overcame the country. The leaders of the resistance and demonstrations were making plans once the current president resigned and disbanded the various government councils. That lasted for almost two weeks I was able to fire off stories as did Sam but we were waiting with bated breath to see if President Husak would follow through or renege and take back the power. Our best guess was that he was waiting for instructions from Moscow. 358 Each day was one of silence from the office of the President. The committee met each day and began planning for a massive three day strike in the event the government backed off its announcement. On the fifth day, December 2nd, word came to Jan to prepare for launching the three day strike if no positive action was forthcoming from the administration by December 11th. Relief for the entire nation came on December 10th. The President appointed the first non-communist government since 1948. Dubcek was elected speaker of the parliament and Vaclav Havel was named President. One of the first announcements from the new government was a date in the coming June of the first democratic elections in more than fifty years. I said my good byes after getting my profiles on Jan and Marta and a long interview with Alexander Dubcek. I felt so honored to have had the chance to be so close to the leaders of what became known later as the “Velvet Revolution” Just before the end of 1990, Jack and I agreed that it might be a good time for me to retire from the Times. I was only forty eight but had been with the Times full time for twenty three years. We celebrated in Washington and the next day I flew to New York to celebrate with my friends and tutors, Mac who had retired, Bill from the city desk, Freddie from the international desk and Frannie who was retiring two months hence. I was honored when the editorial chief joined the party. My associates at the magazine, Elsie and Felicia were there to add to the tears that flowed. Diane was now at Harvard, finally adapting to the campus life. Her stories were the life of our gathering in Coalton for the 359 Christmas holiday; she turned toward me at the dinner table. “Mom, something entirely slipped my mind. Alexa Sellech and I finally had some time to spend together. She is charming and a real brain. “Are you planning to spend more time together?” “Yes, we are going to double date the week end after we return.” “Hey. You haven’t told me about a boyfriend.” “Nothing serious, Mom. I’ve been sort of playing the field with just a few Harvard and MIT men.” All I could say was “Oh.” Kate and Mama were taking up most of her time and doting and spoiling her as they had for years. As the New Year unfolded I devoted myself to being a full time wife to Jack, learning to cook by taking classes at the adult education center and getting tips from Mama on the phone. I spent ten days in Colton helping Kate care for Mama after her confinement into hospital with pneumonia. At home I usually spent about two hours devouring the Times, the Washington Post and the Wall Street Journal. Diane was home for the Memorial Day holiday. She had asked me if there was a chance to find work at the Times Washington bureau for ten weeks or so. Sig said he had no budget but made a few calls. Diane was invited to work part of the summer at the Washington Post in a position similar to the one I had at the Times in 1962. Like mother, like daughter. Miracles do happen. Her boss at the Post was an alumna from Barnard, a political science major and classmate of mine. 360 The three of us took a motor trip either to see some of the quaint areas around the Chesapeake, historical sites in Virginia and the Carolinas. A week after Diane left to do some volunteer work in the south I had a call from my first and best buddy at Barnard, Anne. We had become fast friends beginning the first day on the Barnard campus. After fifteen minutes playing catch up, Anne told me that she and Paul were volunteering with the campaign committee of the Bill Clinton run for the presidency. She asked “Are you available to meet me and some folks from the committee in Washington this coming Friday?” “Why on earth meet with a political committee. Are you available for a one on one after your meeting?” “Yes I am but join us. You might find it fun. Your mom told me you were retired.” After a little more resistance, I finally conceded. On Friday I went into town with Jack, had coffee with him and a few associates before strolling to the meeting. Anne gave a huge bear hug and introduced me to the other seven members present. We sat around having juice and coffee while apparently awaiting the arrival of several others. Twenty minutes later in walked Hilary Clinton bringing a gasp from me. I loved her from that first five minutes as she took charge of the meeting, laid out the agenda and worked us through the plan within forty five minutes. When she was done, everyone clearly understood their role for the next two weeks. When the meeting was adjourned, she walked over to me. “Ms. Cheka, I am delighted that Anne convinced you to meet with us. If you have a bit more time, I would like to have you join me for brunch.” 361 “I’ be honored, Mrs. Clinton.” “I am Hilary to all the others and would be pleased if you chose to address me in that way.” “All right. I’m Cathy.” During our meal she spoke of how they had made the decision to have Bill toss his hat in the political ring and now a run for the presidency. As we were having a light dessert she said “Cathy, Bill and I have probably read every piece you have written since you were first featured in the magazine and then your work through the Washington Bureau. We are agreed that we would like to employ you as a researcher and a writer for this primary and if we are lucky, for the general election.” “Wow. This is a bolt from the blue. My husband and I just recently were reading up on the candidates and decided we would support Mr. Clinton’s campaign, but neither of us have any knowledge of how campaigns are conducted.” “Oh, we have plenty of professional and experienced campaigners.” “What could I possibly contribute?” “I can think of three things. First is the fact that your name is associated will help with the young women’s vote? Second, there is a need to polish the wording of press releases and news stories. Thirdly, we think your research skills will help us find weaknesses, if any, in the backgrounds of our opponents. In addition, I think your presence on the planning committee might be of value when our own people are pushing hard to have their private agendas be Bill’s agenda.” “Hilary, I think you are overrating my abilities in this situation.” “Bill and I do not think so. Listen. You do not need to make decision today. You want to discuss this at home and maybe 362 consult some of your former colleagues. I’m due back in D.C.next Wednesday. Perhaps we can meet for breakfast or a coffee date.” “All right. I still think you can do better but I will do some consulting and have an answer by next week.” She flashed a warm smile as she stood. “Sorry, I have to run. I’ll pray that you have an affirmative response when I see you. Let’s meet right here, if this is convenient.” I could hardly wait until Jack got home that evening. We discussed pros and cons over drinks and decided to call Diane to get her opinion. All I got was encouragement with Diane saying she would find way to do some volunteer work near school. Conversations with Frannie, Mac, Sig and Bill at the Times produced the same results. All signals were go and Hilary and I clinched the deal the following week. I had some qualms about Bill’s reputation but I saw no hesitation of support from Hilary Furthermore, I did a little research on the other Democratic candidates and saw, in my opinion, a group of light weights who could not stand up to President Bush. Bill was a proven campaigner and being from Arkansas would have at least some southern support. Much of my research took me to several libraries in the city, the morgue of the Washington Post, with special permission, and the morgue of the Times Washington Bureau. It is interesting to note that pearls of information may be found in the little stories that are buried in the midst of the daily Times which boasted of printing all the news that fit to print. It was there where I pick up two stories in which Jesse Jackson was quoted with anti-Jewish comments. When Jerry Brown publicly announced the possibility of Jackson being a running mate, I sent copies of the stories to our campaign manager, who made optimum use to Brown’s dismay. 363 Brown’s acknowledged relationship with Louse Farrakhan was another factor when I was able to produce stories quoting Farrakhan on anti-Semitism. It seems than Brown’s ascending popularity took a sudden nose dive. In general there was little I contributed to the primary campaign, at least in my opinion. I wrote some new stories, created some press releases hoping my spin may be helpful and edited some speeches being made by some supporters at various rallies. Bill and Hilary took three of us writers to lunch a week after his victory. It was his personal thank you for our contributions. He handed us each hand written note, which in my case, he thanked me for my extraordinary effort in getting young women’s vote. His reference was to a series of extra chats that I organized for young women around his appearances throughout the nation. I, unabashedly, took advantage of my name and my drive for women’s rights to attract the young people. Touring with either Bill or Hilary was exciting. I called Jack each evening when I was on the road, missing him terribly but thrilled with the experience of being an insider of a presidential race. On three occasions in the northeast, Diane joined me in the chat groups. Elsie, my old friend on the staff of the Times, wrote a feature story of mother-daughter involvement in the campaign, pictures and all. I volunteered for the west coast swing which ended up in San Francisco. I had called Sara Sellech and her husband, David, to join us at the Fairmont for dinner. I knew they were supporters of the campaign. I left the campaign group to spend the week end in Portola Valley with the Sellechs and friends. 364 Maria, Sara’s daughter and the mother of Diane’s friend at Harvard, spent much of the weekend with us, the two of us comparing notes on the progress of our daughters. Jack and I along with Diane spent Thanksgiving week end with mom and Kate in Coalton It was a joyous reunion, our last. There was no way to know that two days before Christmas; both would be killed when hit by a drunken driver while shopping in Wheeling. 365 Chapter 23. My broker, Mickey, with his family and our threesome spent a somber Charismas day in Colton, not the way we had been planning Much of the day was spent in silence none of us knowing what to say. I found myself crying at strange moments. There were some light minutes during the gift exchange but a pall descended when we found Kate’s and mom’s presents wrapped and ready to be given to us. Everything came to a halt as we reached for hankies to wipe away the tears. That night, long after I heard Jack’s even breathing, I lay awake with thousands of images flashing through my mind. I was recalling the hundreds of woman to woman conversations that helped shape the way I was leading my life at the moment. I remembered the strictness that later I determined to be her way of drawing a line that was there to be challenged. I had a clear picture of the evening when daddy was stuck in the mine. It was that evening that she had cajoled Mickey into forging a close relationship with me. I believe I fell asleep shortly after reviewing that last meeting before we left for Vietnam. She had said “I love you both so much and wish you were not taking this risk, but I understand your need and support and will pray for you each and every day.” I am sure she did. The double funeral was held on the twenty sixth. The church was filled and then some, the overflow crowd in the social hall with loudspeakers bringing the mass and service to the added crowd. Mickey was too broken up to stand in the reception line in the social hall. Later the families gathered in Kate’s living room for 366 our private memory sharing. I found the bottle of Jack Daniels that Kate kept for medicinal purposes. We drank a toast to the women who had so much to with shaping our lives In the silence that followed I asked Mickey what was his schedule at the Times. Instead of responding directly, he started talking about his plan to do a photographic study of life in the United States. “I have six weeks of vacation that I have to take this year or lose it.” Julie said “We were thinking of taking a trip this summer when the girls are out of school. With one engaged and one practically living with her boyfriend, this may be our last chance.” I looked at the girls “How do you feel about that?” After a giggle from both “We talked it over with our men, who agreed if mom lets them join us for part of the time. She hasn’t said yes, at least not yet.” We all turned toward Julie with questing marks on our faces. She said “I may regret this but I want that time with the girls almost at any cost.” Smiles broke out on a lot of faces. I said “I have a suggestion which needs exploring. “Jack, how would you like to spend your vacation in a caravan with them, touring the country?” “I think it would be great. Diane, can you get away to join us for part of the trip?” Diane frowned. “Sorry. I have made some other commitments.” After consulting with the three women, he said. “Let’s make it work, Sis, I have a feeling you have something more in mind.” All eyes were turned toward me. “Mickey, if everyone is agreeable, I thought you could help us upgrade our cameras so that 367 we can all contribute photos for a new book on life in the current U.S.A” Diane popped up with “Mom can do the prose to round out the book.” The conversation broke into chaos as everyone had something to add. The atmosphere was electric and the sadness gave way to excitement. I stayed behind in Coalton to handle the affairs of both estates while everyone else returned to their appointed responsibilities. I found the time be both sad and nostalgic. I knew not a soul. All my high school mates were long gone just as I had been. Nothing had changed much in appearance. I walked to the meadow where my Johnny and I had found privacy, a place to talk, share our loving thoughts, studied our lessons and found time to make out, teenage style. I sat in the kitchen, sipping a glass of wine and recalling the wonderful woman-to- woman talks with mama, not bothering to wipe away the tears that flowed with the loving memories. I thought about Aunt Kate’s influence on my views of the role of women in society. I walked over to her house and found the copy of the book by Simone de Beauvoir, titled “The Second Sex.” When I had everything under control, I called Jack, who drove from McLean to pick me up. We strolled through town and then walked to the meadow, where we made out, teenage style, finally leaving town on a high note. The trip was a great success. Diane did not bring her fried, no explanation given. The only difficulties were the ones facing one mother seeing her daughters leading their loving partners to their 368 private bedrooms. Julie and I had a good laugh finally admitting we were uptight about daughters behaving just as the mothers had. The books was a smashing succeeds, every one of us, at one point or another appearing at book signings across the nation It received smashing reviews showing the richness and the poverty of a nation, chaos in big cities alongside the peace of small town America. The pain and joy in the faces of the elderly and the youngsters torched the hearts of many readers. There were brilliant pictures of the young adults who had been corralled by our young ones; Diane had fourteen new “pen pals” after that trip in places like SanFrancisco, California and Cody, Wyoming. The real beneficiaries were not the thousands who purchased and viewed the book. They were the Cheka and Wheldon families. The following April all seven of us along with Julie’s dad were present at Columbia Universality for the Pulitzer Prize presentations. Seven proud and tearful individuals marched to the stage to be acknowledged in the category of “Feature Photography.” We were greeted afterwards in the courtyard by my former colleagues at the Times, Elsie, who worked with me during the Columbia riots and three staff members of the Times Magazine. All accepted an invitation to return with us to celebrate in our apartment on Riverside Drive. We had decided to return to the city and moved back three weeks ago. Jack had requested and received a transfer back to the city but was to spend a week of each month in D.C. I became very interested in the digital revolution. I had been using a PC (computer) but decide to switch to the MAC. I 369 bought an early cell phone but soon replaced that heavy clunk with a slimmer version. I spent hours on the Internet marveling as month after month provided new ways to do research. I learned over the next few years how to communicate via email with Diane and Jack, when he was away and other friends. After being cajoled by the new Times Magazine associate editor, my friend, Elsie, I agreed to submit an article six times each of the next three years. In addition I had special requests from several monthly magazines. My subjects ranged from the impact of internet retail business on the brick and mortar retailers to financial crises in Eastern Asia. One story, in particular, fascinated me. I flew to Silicon Valley to do a special piece on E Bay, the provider for individuals and business to buy and sell their products at an online marketplace. Using that story I was able to bring to the front again, the role of women heading public corporations. I researched and submitted articles speculating on the impact of the communication business with the rapid growing use of cell phones and the social impact of the twenty four hour news cycle. A good many of the articles featured special cases focused on some success or some limitation on a woman’s place in public life. Of course I could not give way to the internet entirely. I still devoured the Time and the Post each day and spent for hours doing so on the weekend. 370 In late 1999 I wrote an article for Elsie at the Times on what I perceived to be the dangerous road being travelled by frenzied investors, The article turned out to be prophetic within two years. However, the amount of negative feedback to the article was outrageously heavy, including some comments from members of the administration, who had been one of my co-workers in the 1992 campaign. Joan was a member of the vice- president’s staff, concerned that such negative comments might harm her boss’ chances of election In the late summer of 2000 I had a phone call from a secretary in the President’s office asking if Mickey and I were available to come to Washington on the following Saturday. I said I was and would reach Mickey and call back. At eleven thirty we were ushered into the Oval Office to be greeted by the President. “Welcome Cathy. You must be Mickey Cheka. Welcome.” He shook hands with us and led us to a small room nearby where a table was set for four. Just as we were seated, Hilary joined us, shaking hands with Mickey and giving me a warm hug. The waiter began serving lunch immediately, Bill saying that he had a twelve thirty date. He had a few tastes of the soup, put down his spoon. “How would the two of you like to accompany me on a two day trip to Vietnam and Brunei this November?” I dropped my spoon, looked at Mickey, who was agape. “Vietnam?” Bill smiled and Hilary giggled. “That surprised you, I can see. Yes, before you ask, I am dead serious.” 371 Both our heads were nodding affirmatively before Mickey asked “Why us?” Hilary said “Pulitzer winners are important names. Your pictures will draw attention. Your sister has a reputation for being highly trusted communicator.” Bill said “I believe the Vietnamese will be pleased with our choice. Besides, there is no way I can think of that better says thanks to Cathy for her support in the past.” I asked “What’s involved?” ‘You will be accepted as an official journalist at the Asia Pacific Economic Cooperation Leaders Meeting. Mickey, you will be the official U.S.photographer to record visually who is present. “ “Cathy, I will be interested in hearing your evaluation of reactions by various other members who often chat while someone is pontificating. I certainly can’t read all that from my position. You two will be my other eyes. The same would apply during our meetings with officials in Hanoi.” Mickey asked “What’s after Hanoi?” “We’ll be flying to three countries and then home but you can stay and fly home commercially at our expense, whenever you are ready. I figured you would you might like to revisit the battle sites or places you visited during the war in sixty seven,” We both declared ourselves in, knowing that we would be supported by our lovers at home. What an honor! We finished our lunch and soon were saying good bye to the president. Hilary chatted with us as we had coffee and dessert. We rode in armored limos to the conference headquarters in Brunei I am being a bit cynical when I say that like most high level 372 conferences much of the time was spent listening to useless speeches although there were times of great import and serious debate. By the beginning of the first afternoon session, I separated the wheat from the chaff so I could concentrate on reactions for my report. I may be prejudiced but I thought the President made several important contributions but it was his personal charm and sincerity that produced serious response. We met with the President in between sessions in order to brief him on our observations. He was appreciative and complementary on each of those occasions. I have to admit that I was quite bored with the meetings in Hanoi. Both official parties spent a lot of time restating the mutual advantages of our diplomatic relationships and the recently enacted trade agreements. The visit was actually symbolic, underscoring our new accord. The host officials were delighted to know that they were being photographed by a world famous photographer. The U.S. consul made the most of our reputations to further enhance the charm and importance of the President’s presence. The Presidential party seemed to sigh with relief as they entered the limos for the ride to the airport. That is purely my own interpretation. Through the good graces of the consul we were furnished with a car and driver for the balance of our visit after the presidential party had departed. We headed for AnThoi, the site of our first visit to Vietnam in 1967. The naval base had been converted to a fishing harbor. Instead of Swift Boats, the river was crowded with sampans and motorized fishing boats. We held some conversation with a few locals, using our driver as the interpreter, and took a lot of photos. We then asked him 373 to drive us to the nearest village where I hoped to find Marie and Helen Nguyen. They were the sisters that I interviewed during that first trip. One, Marie, a strong supporter of the Viet Cong and Helen, who feared a victory by the North Vietnamese. The name Nguyen is similar to Smith in the U.S. but again our interpreter was able to find the home of Marie Nguyen. She was seated in the shade of a large tree abut twenty yards from the river bank. She was as stunning this day as I remembered her from our first visit thirty three years ago. Hair pulled back tight with a silver clip holding the small pony tail, skin as smooth as a teenager and her body as slender as the day I met her.”Ms.Cheka, is it really you?” “Yes, Marie, isn’t it?” She came forward to clasp me about the shoulders. “Yes, Helene is dead, I am sorry to say. Welcome. Enter, please. I will prepare some tea.” “Marie, this is my brother, Mickey. He was with me but I do not think you had a chance to meet. He is a photographer and would be honored to take some photos with your permission.” “Please to meet you, Mickey. Please feel free, any place in or out.” She turned to me.”Can you spend a full day or more?” “We hadn’t considered it but I think we can do that.” “I would be honored. There is much I would like to learn about your country and I want to tell you all the things that are happening here since those terrible days.” We had a great visit after tea. Mickey was out roaming the village and the surrounding area, camera busy shooting. Marie told me about her sister, Helene. “In the latter days of the war, the entire area was under control of the Viet Cong. I, personally, was pleased, of course” 374 She paused to gather her composure and in a strained voice went on “A Viet Cong detachment came to the village some months after you left. One of the neighbors told the sergeant that Helene had deep sympathies for and was a helper to the South Viet army. Despite my pleas, even knowing that I was one of them, they took her to some prison location where she was kept for about six months.” “When she was finally returned she was poorly nourished, twenty pounds lighter, coughing badly and running a fever” “Using all my personal influence I manage to get her to an American base, about forty kilometers to the south. I got the American medic from the base to look at her. Several days after his examination and some blood tests, he told me she had pneumonia and tuberculosis. We nursed her for about six weeks, but could not save her even with the medicines that the medic gave to me, under the table. I think that is the expression.” “I loved her although, as you know, we were on opposite sides of the conflict.” In the course of the conversation she said “You know that in the end it was Helene who really understood the intentions of Hanoi. I was an unrealistic dreamer of an independent South Vietnam.” Her voice broke and she turned her head so that I would not see the tear falling to her cheek. “I was heartbroken, particularly that I could not save my sister. The soldiers who took her were not aware of my work for the Viet Cong. I, of course could not tell them who I was. My work for the Viet Cong as an intelligence agent was under cover, while my work as a propaganda writer was more overt.” “Anyhow, now we are moving away politically from the strict communist stance of the seventies.” 375 I asked her what brought about the changes. She said “Vietnam needs to trade with western nations, especially with your nation. Also, worldwide communications through the Internet has made our people more aware of the status of other people around the world and our leaders are wise enough to listen.” Meanwhile, Mickey was unobtrusively, snapping photographs of our surroundings and, I am sure, doing a photo study of Marie as she related her story. She plied me with questions of the plight of our citizens, politically and socially. She was truly impressed with my relationship with President Clinton and Mickey’s Pulitzer. After eating a lavish dinner, we sat around a small fire under a full moon while I answered more than a hundred questions about life in the states. After breakfast the next morning, she insisted that we drive to visit several villages and observe the cottage industries that were creating jewelry, knitted goods and decorated linens to be exported. We finally departed after lunch starting a two day trip, to the north. We visited previous battle sites, now converted to grazing pastures for cattle or large vegetable truck farms. I was deeply moved to see no signs of the war, although I should not have been surprised. We, finally, were able to locate the spot where we spent those days observing the bloody battle for hill 881. I closed my eyes let my mind flash back to the days I watched the slaughter of our men as they stormed the myriad of pill boxes and trenches in which the North Vietnamese were waiting for our men. I opened my eyes to see some white fences behind which romped some horses. I shifted my eyes to see what appeared to be an orchard, now leafless but what seemed to me to be cherry trees. Off to the left at some distance I could see a hillside dotted with grazing cattle. 376 Mickey was busy photographing and laughing with some farm boys who had approached us. I joined them and found that all three of them spoke passable English. I got their permission to record our conversation. They were delighted to take us to the nearby village to meet their parents and two of the village elders. I had two hours of recorded conversation before we sat down to dinner with the head man .and his family He insisted we stay overnight, using the bedroom of one of his children. In the morning he took us to visit the office of the orchard manager and the manager of the large truck farm. Two days later we were two tired tourists ensconced in the same bedrooms at the Caravelle Hotel that we occupied twenty three years earlier. The rooms were upgraded as was the entire hotel. We enjoyed a tour of the city, some delicious meals and a good night’s rest before flying home to be enfolded in the arms of our loved ones. Early in December I had a phone call from the President’s secretary. “The President is inviting you and your brother to bring your families for lunch and a tour of the Why House and a special event in the Rose Garden on December sixteenth. If this is possible, please call me back at this number so I can mail official invitations to each of you.” Everyone was agog when I reached them with the news, not one begging off for any reason. The limo picked us up at Union Station, all nine of us, which included the spouses of my nieces. The tour and the lunch were delightful. Bill, popped in for coffee and dessert and some picture taking, including a few by Mickey. 377 The day was beautiful and not too cold. We walked into the Rose Garden where we joined what seemed to be a group of staffers and a dozen photographers. The President walked onto the small portable podium. After some light hearted comments of welcome he said “I am pleased to present the Medal of Freedom to two individuals who during the pasts twenty years have made unique and meritorious contributions to the nation’s interest. You will note that this is a small number of guests on this occasion but I believe their contributions over the last two decades have thrilled millions. I think the nation will agree with me that these two citizens deserve this honor and much more.” “They have brought us face to face with the fierceness and pain of war, the terror of despotic rule in nations around the world”. “She has championed equal rights for the disenfranchised and moved nations to care better for their veterans here and abroad.” “I am happy to present this honor to Cathy Cheka Wheldon and Mickey Chaka, both affiliated with the New YorkTimes.” The applause sounded deafening to me as I joined Mickey in stepping to the podium. He had to take my arm as I stumbled with tears streaming down my cheeks. The President offered me a hankie to wipe my tears, my mind filled with the silly thought that I am glad I had not used mascara. During the presentation we were the focus of the flashes and the questions, a turnabout from our pasts. It was ego filling and oh, so satisfactory, I have to admit. We were told that as many of us who were available, rooms were available at the Mayflower. Cell phones suddenly emerged for calls back to the City. Ten minutes later we had a full party headed for the hotel, where we enjoyed a truly joyous dinner and after dinner drinks in our suite. 378 In the midst of the celebration my cell phone rang. “Cathy. It’s Sara. Sellech. I just saw the news on CNN. Congrats to you and Mickey. I am so proud of you.” I was stunned to the point of being speechless. I heard her ask “Are you there?” Finally I said “Yes, but choked up.” “No words are necessary. Love from David and me and congratulations again. Please plan a visit to see us in Portola Valley.” The final note was sounded by Diane who led a toast to, in her opinion, the greatest journalists and parents in the world. The end. 379 380